113 76
English Pages 420 [430] Year 1981
Five Mountains
HARVARD EAST ASIAN MONOGRAPHS 8&5
FIVE MOUNTAINS The Rinzai Zen Monastic Institution in Medieval Japan
MARTIN COLLCUTT
Published by COUNCIL ON EAST ASIAN STUDIES, HARVARD
UNIVERSITY, and distributed by HARVARD UNIVERSITY
PRESS, Cambridge (Massachusetts) and London 1981
© Copyright 1981 by The President and Fellows of Harvard College
468 1097653
The Council on East Asian Studies at Harvard University publishes a mono-
graph series and, through the Fairbank Center for East Asian Research, administers research projects designed to further scholarly understanding of China, Japan, Korea, Vietnam, Inner Asia, and adjacent areas. Library of Congress Cataloging in Publication Data
Collcutt, Martin, 1939Five Mountains. (Harvard East Asian monographs ; 85) Bibliography: p. Includes index. 1. Monasticism and religious orders, Zen—Japan. 2. Monastic and religous life (Zen Buddhism)—Japan.
I. Title. II. Series.
BQ9294.4.J3C64 294.3657 0952 80-23316 ISBN 0-674-30498-5
To My Parents
Foreword
In the past two decades, young scholars writing in English on Japan
have increasingly left the well-traveled highroads of traditional historical and cultural studies to explore the byroads and the large tracts of still unstudied terrain in Japan’s past. In doing this they have often been following in the pioneering footsteps of new generations of Japanese scholars, but often enough they have led the way themselves. Through these explorations, they have opened up whole new vistas on Japan’s past and greatly expanded our un-
derstanding of its complexities and diversities. Martin Collcutt, who teaches in the Department of East Asian Studies at Princeton University, leads us in such an adventure into new terrain in his FIVE MOUNTAINS: THE RINZAI ZEN MONASTIC INSTITUTION IN MEDIEVAL JAPAN. It explores the history and organization of the gozan organization within the Rinzai branch of Zen,
which reached its apogee from the late thirteenth to the early fifteenth centuries and played a prominent role in medieval Japanese Buddhism and an even more dominant role in the culture of the time. This volume is an important addition to the Harvard East Asian Monograph Series, which is published by the Council on East Asian Studies at Harvard and is designed to present contributions of lasting scholarly value based on original research. While Buddhism has been Japan’s leading religion for most of the nation’s history, playing a part in its culture only slightly less
important than Christianity in European civilization, we know little about Buddhist institutional development in Japan. There
Vili Foreword has been a great deal written on its sects and their philosophies and the whole theological, philosophical, and even artistic development of Japanese Buddhism, but little on its internal organization and development or its economic and political role in society. We would find strangely distorted an account of European civilization
which, while discussing the development of Christian theology, told us almost nothing about the Christian church. But we have been satisfied with such one-sided portrayals of Buddhism in Japan.
It is ironic that Zen philosophy, which is commonly characterized as being beyond words, has inspired millions of words in English print, whereas Zen institutions, though vastly important in many aspects of medieval Japanese civilization and in no way beyond description in words, have drawn so few. Professor Collcutt goes a long way toward redressing the balance by describing gozan history and organization fully and with meticulous care for accurate detail. Most readers will have much to learn from this book: the gradual introduction of Zen in the late twelfth and early thirteenth centuries and its easy eclecticism during its early years; the close patterning of Zen institutions on Chinese Sung and Yuan models; the huge role played by a large number of Chinese immigrant monks, many of them refugees from Mongol rule, and by semi-Sinicized Japanese monks who had studied for long years in China; the size and novelty of the Chinese cultural impact that accompanied Zen and made that period in some ways comparable to the time of the first great wave of Chinese influence in the seventh to ninth centuries; the determining role of the patronage of the late Hojo shikken of Kamakura, the ill-fated Emperor Go-Daigo, and the early Ashikaga, particularly Takauji’s brother Tadayoshi; the huge size, the elaborate structure, and the complexity of organization of the whole gozan system; and the deep penetration of this system into the economic and social fabric of medieval Japan. Professor Collcutt takes his reader over fascinating new terrain. The thoroughness of his work and his eye for careful detail make one feel that the trail he has blazed will need little later correction or even widening by others. Edwin O. Reischauer
Contents
FOREWORD by EDWIN O. REISCHAUER V11
PREFACE XV
INTRODUCTION 1 PART I: THE DEVELOPMENT OF THE INSTITUTION 23
1 JAPANESE ZEN PIONEERS AND THEIR PATRONS 25 | Stages of Acculturation 28 Motives of Japanese Zen Pioneers 31 Eisai and the Kamakura Shogunate 36 Enni and Kuj6 Michiie 41 Shinchi and the Ideal of the Recluse 48 Dogen and His Patrons 49 2 CHINESE EMIGRE MONKS AND JAPANESE WARRIOR-RULERS 57
Hojo Patronage 57 Hojo Tokiyori and Lan-ch’i Taolung 65 Hojo Tokiyori and Wu-an P’u-ning 68 Hojo Tokimune’s Patronage of Zen 70 Hojo Tokimune and Wu-hsueh Tsu-yuan 72 Hojo Sadatoki and I-shan I-ning 73
x Contents Hojo Takatoki’s Patronage of Zen 76 The Zen Contribution to Warrior Culture 78 Provincial Diffusion of Zen 80 Imperial Patronage of Zen 84
3 THE ARTICULATION OF THE GOZAN SYSTEM 91 Go-Daigo and Muso-— 92
Reorganization of the Gozan 93 Go-Daigo’s Motives 94 Ashikaga Patronage of Zen 98 Takauji and Tadayoshi 102 The Building of Tenryiiji and Ashikaga Power 103 Ankokuji and Rishotd = 106 Gozan, Jissatsu, and Shozan 109
Regional Distribution 115 Centralization and Control of the Gozan by the Ashikaga 117 The Tenka Soroku and the InrySshoku 119 Zenith and Decline 123 The Emergence of Daitokuji and Mydshinji 125 PART I: THE STRUCTURE OF THE INSTITUTION 131
4 THE ZEN MONASTIC LIFE AND RULE 133 The Development of the Rule 133 The Problem of the Pai-chang Code 136 The Ch’an-men Regulations and the Ch’an-yuan Code 138 Introduction of the Ch’an Monastic Rule to Japan 145 The Rinsenji Code 149 Bakufu Regulation of the Gozan 165
5 THE MONASTERY ANDITS SUB-TEMPLES 171 Transmission of the Ground Plan 172
The Setting 182
Contents x1 The Layout 183 Gates 188 The Buddha Hall 190 The Dharma Hall 194 The Abbot’s Building 197 The Bathhouse, Latrines, and Washstands 201 The Monks’ Hall 206 The Reading Room = 215
The Kitchen-Office 218
6 THE COMMUNITY 221
The Abbot 228 | Population 221
The Officers 236 Acolytes 243 Postulants and Novices 245
7 THE ZEN MONASTIC ECONOMY 249 Ch’an Communities in China 249 Japan: Zen Monastic Domains 253 The Engakuji Economy 255 The Nanzenji Economy 263 The Daitokuji Economy 269 Management of the Zen Monastic Domain 275
CONCLUSION 291
NOTES 301 BIBLIOGRAPHY 335 GLOSSARY 361 INDEX 383
Illustrations
1. East Asia in the Year 1200 6
2. The Provinces of Medieval Japan 12 3. The Monastery of T’ien-t’ung-shan 34 4, Ch’an Master Wu-chun Shih-fan 42 5. The Monastery of Tofukuji | , 44 6. Gozan Woodblock Printed Book 46 7. H6j6 Tokiyori in the Robes of a Zen Abbot 60
8. Document Signed by Hdjo Takatoki 112
9. Ground Plan of T’ien-t’ung-shan 176
10. Ground Plan of Kenchoji | 179
11. The Buddha Hall at Chin-shan 198
12. The Bathhouse at T’ien-t’ung-shan 203
13. The Latrine at Chin-shan 204
14. The Monks’ Hall at Ching-shan 213 15. The Reading Room at Chin-shan 216
Preface
The Buddhist institution was as powerful a force in medieval Japan as the Christian church in medieval Europe; and Buddhist monks, nuns, and shavelings as ubiquitous in medieval Japanese society as nobles, warriors, peasants, or merchants. We know woefully little, however, about the organization of Japanese Buddhist monasteries, the ways in which they acquired, extended,
and managed their lands, the kinds of economic activities they engaged in, or the political and military influence they exerted. Nor have we a very much firmer grasp of the individual character and interaction of the various schools of Buddhism, of the daily religious lives of monks and nuns, or of their social, cultural, and intellectual interests. Without a more detailed understanding of the Buddhist church and its pervasive presence in society, our intellectual map of medieval Japan must remain vague and misleading. Recent Western scholarship on medieval Japan has tended to focus on emerging warriors, declining nobles, militant peasants, and nascent townspeople. Important as these groups undoubtedly were in the shaping of medieval society, a rounded view must also take into account the still potent religious institutions.’
Comprehensive treatment of the many streams of “old” and “new,” or popular, Buddhism in medieval Japan would go well beyond the scope of a single book. Even an adequate discussion of the history of the various schools of medieval Zen Buddhism, just one segment of the whole Buddhist institution, would call
xvi Preface for several volumes. This book describes the institutional develop-
ment and organization of one important branch of medieval Japanese Zen, that embracing the three hundred or so officially sponsored monasteries—and their several thousand sub-temples and branch temples—of the Five Mountains (gozan) schools of
Zen during the period from the introduction of Zen teachings from China by Eisai (or Y6dsai)? and other monks in the late twelfth century, through the zenith of the gozan system under the patronage of the Ashikaga shoguns in the fourteenth and early fifteenth centuries, to its enervation and eclipse by rival schools of Zen in the late fifteenth and sixteenth centuries. Some mention
is made of non-gozan Rinzai Zen, of S6t6 Zen, and of Obaku Zen introduced to Japan in the mid-seventeenth century. The primary concern of the book, however, is with the medieval gozan
network. Many early Chinese Zen (Ch’an) communities were established in remote mountain fastnesses, and most later Zen monasteries, whether built in mountain valleys or on level ground, continued to imply this ideal of a detached and lofty spiritual retreat by adopt-
ing the name of a mountain as part of their official title. Thus the full title of the Kyoto Zen monastery of Nanzenji is Zuiryizan Taihei Kokoku Nanzen Zenji or ‘‘Auspicious Dragon Mountain
Southern Zen Temple for the Promotion of Great Peace and the Prosperity of the Realm.” During the Southern Sung Dynasty some fifty leading Chinese Zen monasteries are thought to have been ranked in a three-tier, officially regulated hierarchy headed by Five Mountains: the Ching-shan wan shou ch’an ssu, Pei-shan ch’ing te ling-yin ch’an ssu, and Nan-shan ch’eng t’zu pao en kuang
hsiao ch’an ssu of Hangchow and the Tai-pai-shan t’ien t’ung ching te ch’an ssu and A-yii-wang-shan kuang li ch’an ssu of Ming-
chou.* This Five Mountains system was imitated and enlarged in medieval Japan and came to include most, though not all, of the medieval Rinzai Zen lineages and one branch of the Sét6 school.
Here, a note of caution should be sounded. Throughout this book, I refer frequently to Five Mountains ‘“‘systems” in China and Japan. In Japan, as the ensuing chapters will demonstrate,
Preface xvii there certainly developed a carefully regulated, centralized system of officially sponsored Rinzai Zen monasteries. In Sung and Yuan dynasty China, however, the character of the Ch’an monastery and the extent of a Five Mountains system are somewhat more problem-
atic. Some doubt may be expressed as to whether so-called Chinese Ch’an Buddhist monasteries ever assumed the exclusive sectarian character that was typical of the great Zen monasteries of medieval Japan. Even if the teaching, practice, and ceremonial in individual Chinese monasteries was dominated by Ch’an monks,
it is possible that the same monasteries also sheltered monks whose primary commitment was to Pure Land or Lu (Vinaya) teachings. Moreover, although Japanese scholars of the history of
Zen all point to the creation of a system of officially regulated Ch’an monasteries in late Sung China, they say little or nothing about the actual operation of that system. The Chinese documentary evidence commonly cited in support of the Five Mountains system is a reference by the early Ming scholar-official Sung Lien
(1310-1381) to the existence of ‘Five Mountains and Ten Temples.”’ Sung Lien provides neither a detailed description nor a history of the network. On the other hand, in spite of the dearth of descriptive evidence,
it would be rash to deny the existence of distinctively Ch’an monastic centers or of a cluster of government-sponsored Ch’an
monasteries in late Sung China. Many monasteries used the characters ‘“‘Ch’an monastery” as part of their formal title; codes such as the Ch’an-yuan ch’ing-kuei were written specifically for Ch’an monasteries; and diagrams made of their distinctive features.
Further, in setting up the Five Mountains system in Japan, Japanese Rinzai monks and their secular patrons were convinced
that they were faithfully reproducing a type of monastery and monastic organization that existed in contemporary China. Japanese monks, many of whom had been to China, had the guidance of Chinese émigré monks. Thus, even if the Chinese Five Mountains system was less sharply defined than its Japanese offshoot, it was unlikely to have been a figment of their imaginations. It is with the above proviso in mind that I refer to the Chinese
xviii Preface Five Mountains. For a clearer picture of Ch’an Buddhism in the
Sung and Yuan dynasties, we must await further research by scholars of Chinese history and religion into the Buddhist institution as a whole and into the religious environment of such Ch’an centers as A-yu-wang-shan or Ching-shan.
Although most modern Japanese Rinzai Zen traces its spiritual
ancestry to the Chinese Zen patriarchs, not via the old gozan schools but through Hakuin (1686-1769), the extra-gozan lineages
of Daitokuji and Myéshinji, and their founders Shihd Mydchs (1282-1337), and Kanzan Egen (1277-1360), the gozan schools and monasteries are worthy of more careful scrutiny than they have hitherto received in Western scholarship on Japan. The gozan was certainly the most socially influential, economically powerful
sector of medieval Zen. Moreover, the fully articulated gozan network spread from Kyoto and Kamakura throughout all the provinces of Japan, and gozan monasteries served as centers for the introduction and diffusion not only of Zen Buddhism but also of Chinese learning and culture, contributing inestimably to the enrichment of medieval intellectual and cultural life. Although eclipsed by other branches of Rinzai Zen in the late medieval period, gozan monasteries—Shdkokuji, Nanzenji, Tenrytji, Kenchoji, Engakuji—continued to play a significant role in Tokugawa society, and some of the former gozan are among the most visited present-day Japanese Zen centers.
The gozan group comprised several distinct Zen lineages, of which those deriving from Musd Soseki (1275-1351) and Enni Ben’en (1202-1280) were the most numerous. Nevertheless, the gozan network lends itself to study as a single unit. All the
monasteries were regulated by similar monastic codes and shared a common pattern of layout and organization. All were linked to the center, eventually regulated from within Shokokuji in Kyoto, and treated as a single group by warrior governments. Famous Zen masters from Kyoto or Kamakura gozan were invited
to head provincial monasteries, while able or well-connected young monks from the provinces could rise to the headship of one of the Kamakura or Kyoto gozan. And, in their style of Zen
Preface x1x and their Chinese cultural predilections, the gozan shared common
traits which distinguished them subtly, but decisively, from non-gozan Rinzai and S6t6 Zen monasteries.
- Surviving documentary source materials for the history of the
gozan are plentiful, but hitherto only partially explored in the Western literature. Zen monastic codes, ground plans of Chinese and Japanese Zen monasteries, the records and diaries of leading gozan prelates, volumes of poetry in Chinese, as well as religious paintings, portraits, and ink paintings all shed light on the daily monastic life and cultural activities of the gozan. While documen-
tation for provincial gozan monasteries is sparse, documents detailing the organization and economic life of some of the major
Kamakura and Kyoto gozan—Engakuji, Kenchoji, Nanzenji, Tofukuji—have survived and been printed, and the copious docu-
mentary record of Daitokuji also throws light on the gozan economy. Gozan monasteries were also frequently mentioned in
secular legal codes and diaries of the day. With this wealth of documentation, the gozan system is one medieval Japanese institu-
tion that invites the writing of a detailed history. A number of fine studies by Japanese scholars have been written. There are excellent studies of Nanzenji and Engakuji by Sakurai Kageo and Tamamura Takeji.© Imaeda Aishin’s Chusei Zenshu-shi no kenkyu
looks in great detail at the articulation of the gozan system. Haga KOshird’s Chisei Zenrin no gakumon oyobi bungaku ni kansuru kenkyu is still the finest introduction to the intellectual life of the gozan.® Three excellent essays on aspects of the gozan
organization and culture have recently appeared in English,’ some gozan poetry has been translated,® and catalogues prepared
for exhibitions of Chinese and Japanese ink paintings at the Boston Museum of Fine Arts and the Art Museum, Princeton, in 1972 and 1975, have also enlarged our understanding of the cul-
tural pursuits and talents of Zen monks.? Most of the work in English to date, however, has tended to focus on the cultural aspects of the gozan.'° This book seeks to describe the monastic environment within which gozan Zen culture emerged; to relate the medieval gozan monasteries to the political and economic
Xx Preface life of the age; and to present the gozan as a working Buddhist monastic system in a warrior-dominated society. To this end, Part One provides a historical survey of the introduction and development of Sung dynasty Zen in medieval Japan
viewed, as far as possible, from the standpoint of the Japanese secular patrons of Zen monasteries. Part Two examines the structure of the medieval Zen monastery, its characteristic buildings,
community organization, monastic rule, and economic life. Throughout the book, the emphasis is on the institutional develop-
ment and organization of Zen monasteries, rather than on the spiritual content of gozan Zen or the intellectual, literary, and cultural activities of Zen monks. Readers seeking an understanding
of Zen enlightenment or of the essence of Zen-related aesthetics are unlikely to find it here."’ They should, however, gain some insight into the importance that Zen monks have always attached to the disciplined organization of monastic life and the careful management of resources in sustaining an environment conducive to the monk’s striving for enlightenment. They should also, it
is hoped, attain a fuller understanding of the place of gozan Zen monasteries in the social, political, and economic life of medieval Japan.
In the course of writing this book, I have become indebted to many friends, fellow research workers, librarians, and foundations.
Professor John M. Rosenfield first stimulated my interest in Muso and his regulations for the Rinsenji community.'* To understand the Rinsenji Code 1 quickly found I had to learn more about the tradition of Zen monastic codes, the organization and economic life of Zen monasteries, and the development of the gozan system. Professors Donald H. Shively, Albert M. Craig,
Masatoshi Nagatomi, and Edwin O. Reischauer have always provided generous guidance and encouragement. Professors Kenneth Grossberg, James Kanda, Marius B. Jansen, Frederick W. Mote, James H. Sanford, Carl Steenstrup, Patricia Tsurumi, Denis
C. Twitchett, Holmes Welch, and Philip B. Yampolsky have provided invaluable criticism of all or parts of the manuscript. The staffs of the Harvard-Yenching Library and the Gest Oriental Library, Princeton, have been unfailingly helpful. Peter Bol and Anders Hansson kindly reviewed the glossary.
Preface xxi A Harvard Traveling Fellowship allowed me to spend 1972-1973
in Japan, where a grant from the Nomura Foundation permitted me to visit many more Zen monasteries than I would otherwise have been able to see. Completion of the book has been facilitated
by a National Endowment for the Humanities Research Fellowship for 1977-1978. In Kyoto I was given generous assistance by Professors Hayashiya Tatsusaburo, Yoshida Mitsukuni, Kumakura Isao, and other members of the Kyoto University Jinbun Kagaku Kenkyijo, and by Professors Yanagida Seizan and Kimura Shizuo of Hanazono University. In Tokyo, Professors Fujiki Hisashi, Haga
Koshird, Hirose Rydkd, Imaeda Aishin, Nagahara Keiji, Sasaki Ginya, Tamamura Takeji, and Tamamuro Fumio answered many questions and directed me to new materials. The temples, universities, and publishers who kindly gave me permission to use illustrations are acknowledged on the appropriate pages. I wish to express a personal word of thanks to Professor Hirose Ryoko, Komazawa University, Tokyo; Professor Isao Kumakura, Tsukuba University, and Professor Kikuchi Yujird of the Historiographical Research Institute (ShiryGhensan-jo), Tokyo University. The Rev-
erend Morinaga Sdk6, Dashu’in in Kyoto, kindly provided the calligraphy for the binding. In Florence Trefethen of the Council on East Asian Studies, Harvard, I found the ideal editor: patient, meticulous, and always ready with suggestions for improvements in the clarity of presentation. Her colleague, Mary Ann Flood, generously undertook the task of providing an index. To Teruko Craig I owe thanks for her calligraphy in the bibliography and the glossary. I owe a special debt of gratitude to my wife, Akiko, who,
in addition to typing drafts, prepared maps and diagrams, and checked translations. If errors of fact or judgment remain in the book, they are the responsibility of the author. Princeton, New Jersey January, 1981
Introduction
Zen monastic life is still carried on in Japan today substantially as it was practiced in medieval Japan or Sung dynasty China. More then 21,000 Zen temples are active. Of these, 15,000 belong to the 7 branches of the Sot6 school, some 6,000 to the 15 Rinzai lineages, and a small number to the Obaku school.' The majority
are small, run by a Zen priest, with his wife and family if he is married—celibacy has been optional since the Meiji period—and perhaps two or three novices. There are also a number of training centers, known as sodo (literally, ‘““monks’ halls’) or senmon dojo (specialized training places), within such historically renowned monasteries as Engakuji in Kamakura; Daitokuji, Mydshin-
ji, Nanzenji, Shokokuji and Tofukuji in Kyoto; Etheiji in Fukui prefecture; SOjiji in Yokohama; Manpukuji at Uji; and many more.
Although their meditation halls do not contain as many monks today as formerly, most sodd probably have between fifteen and thirty monks enrolled at any one time. It is the sodo that most faithfully preserves the spirit and forms of the Zen monastic tradition.’ Those young Japanese who choose the spiritual and physical rigors of Zen monastic life are sent, after several years of preparatory training in meditation, sutra chanting, and basic Zen monastic regulation at a small temple, to one of the large sodo for four, five, six, or more years of intensive Zen monastic practice.
2 Introduction While in the sddo, the young monk lives a communal life in an open hall, rises daily at three or four A.M., sits in meditation for six or seven hours; or for fifteen or sixteen during the monthly week-long retreats known as sesshin. He visits his master frequently for guidance in meditation or to offer his interpretation of a koan (case). With his fellow monks he regularly chants the sutras, engages in manual labor (samu), or goes out seeking alms (takuhatsu). His life is silent, lived within the framework of a detailed rule and under the strictest discipline.
Few Zen monks today spend their whole lives in a sodo. For a typical monk, this rigorous phase ends in his late twenties when he is appointed as an officer or assistant head of a smaller temple. There, administrative duties, the training of novices, discussion with local people and temple patrons, and, perhaps, the demands
of family life will impose their own pattern on the daily life of the Zen priest and inevitably temper the severity and regularity to which he was accustomed in the sodo. There are critics who say that Japanese Zen monastic life is now
little more than a hollow shell, the unthinking repetition of past forms, and that, like many other branches of Japanese Buddhism, it has lost its spiritual energy and been infected by secular values.
Zen monks are themselves among the first to admit that young men whose fathers are monks and who will in time themselves inherit a family temple may enter the Zen monastic life from a sense of family responsibility as much as from any deeply felt spiritual need. They will also agree that it is possible for monks to treat their sodo experience as a spartan initiation, severe while
it lasts but, thankfully, not a lifetime commitment, and that monks who have “graduated” may sometimes seem to show, by the standards of Theravada or Western monastic and religious life, a too-ready compromise with secular values. But they will go
on to assert that the practice of Zen is a personal experience, depending less on forms than on the sincerity of each individual in meditation, self-examination, and debate with his Zen master;
that a perceptive Zen master, or roshi, will quickly expose hypocrisy; that some young men may enter a monastery out of a
Introduction 3 sense of duty, but that that alone will hardly be sufficient to sustain them through the long and searching years of sodo life. Most important, they urge, is the simple fact that Zen itself has not changed,
that it is today what it has always been—the most direct path for the determined seeker to the intuitive enlightenment experience of the Buddha himself. This book is less concerned with the allegedly
unchanging reality of Zen than with the mutable institutional framework, the Zen monastery, in which the teaching and practice have been borne through time. Although we cannot say with any certainty that Zen today is purer or less pure than it was in medieval Japan or T’ang or Sung dynasty China, there can be no ques-
tion that the Zen institution in Japan today, notwithstanding the impressive number of surviving monasteries, is very much less prominent than in medieval society. Knowledge of Zen teachings and meditation techniques seems to have first been introduced to Japan from T’ang dynasty China by the Japanese monk Dosho (629-700), who founded the Hosso school in Japan and is said to have built a number of meditation halls, and by the Chinese monks Tao-hsuan (Dosen, 702-760) and I-k’ung (Gika), who expounded Zen to Emperor Saga (786-842).° The Japanese monks Saicho (767-822), the founder of the Japanese Tendai school, and Ennin (793-864) were also familiar with
Zen as a result of their travels on the continent. Ennin, for instance, records several encounters with Chinese Zen monks: After the forenoon meal thirteen Zen and other monks came to see us. [They were] Hui-yiin of the Tendai Sect from the Ch’ien-fu-ssu of Ch’ang-an and the Zen Scholar Monks: Hung-chien, Fa-tuan, Shih-shih, Hsing-chtian, Ch’ang-mi, Fa-chi, Fa-chen, Hui-shen, Ch’iian-ku, Ts’ungshih, Chung-ch’iian, and T’an-yu. They wrote by brush:
Together, quite idly and without attachments, like clouds floating about the landscape, we descended from Wu-feng and wandered to Ch’u and Ssu. Now, having reached this region, we are particularly happy to pay you our respects. It is most extraordinary, and great is our rejoicing. We now intend to go to [Mt.] T’ien-t’ai, and so we take leave of you and depart. Our great esteem. Writing by brush, we then replied:
4 Introduction We Japanese monks now meet with you monks because in the past we had important affinities with you. We know for certain that one must dwell in the emptiness which is the nature of the Law. [Our meeting] is most fortunate. If we reach [Mt.] T’ien-t’ai, we shall certainly see you. Our great esteem 4
Later in his travels he met another group of Zen devotees: After we had eaten, we drank tea, and then, heading due north, we went twenty-five li to Hsing-t’ang hsien in the territory of Chen-chou and went to the Hsi-ch’an-yiian inside the walled town and spent the night. There were over twenty Zen monks who were extremely unruly men at heart.°
Zen did not immediately take root in Japan as an independent school of Buddhism, however. For centuries it was incorporated within the Tendai tradition as one element in the fourfold Tendai practice of sutra study, esoteric rituals, the Vinaya, and contem-
plation. It remained in this subordinate position until the thirteenth century. The failure of Zen to establish its independence on initial contact can be attributed to the overpowering vitality and popularity of contemporary Tendai and Shingon Buddhism among the Japanese court nobility, to the extreme novelty and paradoxical character of the Zen teachings, to the relative sectarian immaturity of Ch’an in T’ang dynasty China, and to the interruption of official relations between Japan and China from the close of the ninth century. Contact with China was reopened in the late Heian period (794-
1185), and from the closing years of the twelfth century Ch’an teachings again began to flow into Japan. The religious situation in China had changed in the intervening period. While Pure Land Buddhism was spreading widely among the people, Ch’an had assumed more clear-cut sectarian form and outstripped T’ien-t’ai, Hua-yen, and the other older Chinese Buddhist schools in religious and social influence to become the dominant branch of monastic Buddhism in China.® It was only natural, therefore, that the growing number of Japanese monks visiting Southern Sung China and
Introduction 5 staying in monasteries in the Hangchow region that were filled with Ch’an monks and headed by Ch’an masters should have been impressed by Ch’an monastic life and teachings and should have
wished to introduce them to Japan. For the first half-century or so, growth was slow. Although with monks like N6nin, Eisai (YOsai), Dogen, and Enni Ben’en it was beginning to make its presence felt, in the year 1250 Zen was still a relatively obscure and alien teaching in Japanese Buddhist circles. While many young
monks, discouraged by spiritual decline within the established Buddhist sects in Japan, were being drawn to Zen as a more vital form of reformed Buddhist practice and monastic life, there were still, in the mid-thirteenth century, very few monasteries in Japan where even a diluted form of syncretic Tendai-Zen was practiced.
By the mid-fourteenth century, however, both the Rinzai and Sdto traditions were firmly rooted as independent schools in Japan. Many hundreds of ‘“‘pure” Zen monasteries and temples were scattered throughout the country, with the metropolitan monasteries under shogunal or imperial patronage, and lesser temples supported by provincial warriors. Agvaghosa in the Buddhacarita (Deeds of the Buddha) relates that Prince Gautama suffered a spiritual crisis at the age of twentynine when, venturing for the first time outside the security of his
palace, he saw the evidence of individual human suffering, old age, and death. Shaken by the knowledge that human life was not the round of pleasures to which he was accustomed, the prince set
out on a personal search for liberation and passionless understanding. Failing to find an answer in intellectual speculation or in
mortification of the body, Sakyamuni eventually attained his enlightenment and entry to Nirvana through meditation, the Middle Path.’ According to the Buddhist tradition, therefore, the Buddha was not an enlightened being from birth. He had to seek his own en-
lightenment and found it in meditation. The Zen schools teach that each individual, through the practice of meditation (zazen), can, in his own lifetime, relive the spiritual enlightenment attained
by the Buddha; can ‘‘see into his own nature and become the
FIGURE 1: East Asia in the Year 1200
“ .INNER ~~MONGOLIA Y 3 | -,3 | Liao R, B = o™aE JEHOL = af © Antung Peking © a A 7 :
Ordos Desert . c := = A= : HSI HSIA = CHIN EMPIRE ie_ wi E: ad = KORYO = Ee 9S Kanto
Wei R. & . A TIBET Hakata # a AL ila
= o _ ZyAPaAN Pair} 4 F Kyotog %, nape Kamakura
Changan Loyang Kaifeng = a @ # a Se ae
Huai R. eC me ¥: eb. > ae KYUSHU Hangchowoe4 = Ming-chou of CHEKIANG ; g
Yangtze R. Nanking ¢ Rees ¥ :
Tali o
KWEICHOW :8 SOUTHERN SUNG : f
YUNNAN =o oe. = FUKIEN ,&*
Canton oe“
Annano ‘ ey fe a aw a 0 100 200 300 Mi.
A > 0 200 400 Km.
x FS Hainan Is.
Introduction 7 Buddha.” According to subsequent Zen tradition, the essence of Sakyamuni’s enlightenment experience, a teaching pointing direct-
ly at the heart of man, was passed not in sutras or texts but in secret mind-to-mind “transmission outside the scriptures’’ to his disciple Mahakasyapa and thence, via twenty-six Indian patriarchs,
in uninterrupted succession, to Bodhidharma, who brought the meditative teaching to China in the early sixth century to become the first patriarch of Ch’an in China.’ Although the historicity of Bodhidharma is in question, and the origins of the Ch’an sect obscured by the accretions and deletions of centuries of selective tradition-making, there can be little doubt that Indian yogic and meditation techniques, or dhyana (Ch’an in Chinese), were carried to China with the early waves of Buddhism. While the Chinese do not seem to have been attracted by extremes
of yogic asceticism, there appeared, from a fairly early period, Chinese Buddhist monks like Tao-an (314-385), who practiced meditation or who combined meditation with the study of Buddhist texts and Vinaya regulations and the conduct of Buddhist ritual. Chih-i (538-597), for instance, a founder of the T’ien-t’ai school and a leading protagonist in the Buddhist circles of his day,
regularly engaged in contemplation and produced some of the earliest Chinese guides for meditation.? The Buddhist contemplative practice struck a responsive chord in Chinese society in part, at least, because of its resonance with the older Taoist philosophical mystical tradition and the Taoist ideal of attaining an intuitive awareness of the underlying Way of the natural universe. At first,
contemplative monks lived within the monasteries of the older schools of Buddhism. But as dhyana meditation gained in popular-
ity and was elevated by its adherents from being merely one of several types of Buddhist practice to being the most direct approach to enlightenment, it was natural that some contemplative monks should establish their own small communities. These had begun to appear by the fifth century. In the seventh century, the monk Hung-jen (601-674), who was later designated the Fifth Ch’an Patriarch, is said to have attracted more than five hundred monks to his community at the East Mountain in Hupei.’®
8 Introduction During the T’ang dynasty (618-906), the meditative stream of Buddhism attracted the attention of an increasing number of Chi-
nese monks and laymen, came under occasional imperial and aristocratic patronage—Empress Wu Tse-t’ien, for instance, patron-
ized the venerable Ch’an master Shen-hsiu (d. 706)—and was, as we have already seen, introduced to Japan. In the eighth century,
there was a polarization within Ch’an circles. The crux of the problem was doctrinal, but the conflict was exacerbated by personal rivalries. The monk Shen-hui (d. 762), rejecting the established quietistic or gradualist approach to enlightenment based on the study of the scriptures accepted by such leading Ch’an masters as Shen-hsiu and his disciple P’u-chi (d. 739), urged a “‘sudden enlightenment”’ interpretation that rejected the written word. He claimed that his own master, Hui-neng (638-716), not Shen-hsiu,
was the Sixth Patriarch and heir to the true Ch’an tradition. In time the dynamic subitist interpretation gained the ascendancy and flourished within the Southern school and its offshoots, while Shen-hsiu’s interpretation and the Northern school which advocated it slowly atrophied.'! Lin-chi I-hsuan (Rinzai Gigen, d. 867) and other spirited masters of the Southern school introduced the
use of shouts, slaps, and mind-breaking ‘‘cases” (kung-an, or koan) to shock their followers out of everyday patterns of thought and into spontaneous enlightenment.’ While Ch’an was developing doctrinally and shaping its particu-
lar methods of encouraging enlightenment, it was also taking a
more clearly defined monastic form with the compilation of distinctive Ch’an “pure regulations” or “‘regulations for the pure
community” (ch’ing-kuei). Pai-chang (749-814) is generally thought of as the first Ch’an codifier and as the architect of Ch’an independence from the Li (Vinaya) school. It seems likely, however, that some Ch’an regulations had been drawn up before Paichang’s time.’* He probably did little more than lend his name to a developing corpus. Nor is it certain that the groups of meditating Ch’an monks were all confined to Lii school monasteries prior to
Pai-chang. There is plenty of evidence to suggest that they had already begun to establish their own independent communities,
Introduction 9 like that at the East Mountain, with characteristic buildings and patterns of monastic organization and daily life.’ The communal type of meditation and daily life practiced by
Ch’an monks produced the characteristic Ch’an monks’ hall (sodo). Ch’an stress on the direct transmission from master to disciple and rejection of excessive reliance on textual study also contributed to the development of the Dharma, or preaching, hall,
another distinctive Ch’an building. It is not clear when these buildings first began to appear, but their prototypes may well have been in use in Hung-jen’s day. By the T’ang dynasty, large,
predominantly Ch’an complexes were being built in the major cities as well as in remote mountain areas.
Other features of early Ch’an monastic life were its stress on frugality and the sustenance of the community by the joint labor of all its members. Pai-chang is accepted as the author of the Ch’an work ethic with his famous phrase “No work, no food.” Again, it
is probable that he did no more than advertise a practice already well established.'5 The positive value of manual labor in Ch’an monastic life was strengthened by the acceptance of the concept of sudden enlightenment. If meditation were actively and constantly practiced, enlightenment, it was argued, could be achieved while in the midst of such everyday activity as cutting firewood, heating bath water, tilling the fields, or sweeping the monastery floors. Taken to an extreme, this could have meant the rejection of seated meditation (zazen). In practice, Ch’an masters did not go this far; zazen maintained its central place in Ch’an practice. It was
the still malleable character of Ch’an, its strong rural roots, emphasis on simplicity, frugality, and discipline, together with the directness of the doctrine, that allowed it to weather the storms in which more powerful schools in the capital lost their lands, their tax privileges, and their wealth in the persecutions culminating in that witnessed by Ennin in 845.
By the Sung dynasty, Ch’an was firmly established as the dominant Buddhist monastic school in China. It was, however, not
quite what it had been in the early T’ang dynasty. The simple communities had coalesced into an organized church. Like the
10 Introduction monasteries of other Buddhist schools, Ch’an monasteries now included Buddha halls, with Buddhist images, where monks engaged in elaborate ceremonies and chanting of sutras in addition to medi-
tation, debate with the master, and manual labor. Doctrinally, Ch’an teachings interacted with the ideas of the T’ien-t’ai, Pure Land, and Hua-yen (Kegon) schools. Ch’an monasteries were in intimate contact with society, especially elite society, and Ch’an monks performed religious functions for the intentions of secular patrons. In this way, while imparting Zen Buddhist ideas on the one hand, on the other Ch’an monks absorbed the cultural values and intellectual concerns of the Chinese social elite, while their monasteries shifted from a self-sufficient economic base to reliance upon patronage and incorporation within the general economy.'®
That the Ch’an school was still vital and disciplined is clear from
examination of the Ch’an-yuan Code (1103).'? But even in this code, although meditation and labor are still emphasized, there are
indications of an elaborate formalization of monastic life and ceremonial. Evidence for this tendency becomes more marked in subsequent codes. The height of Ch’an social prestige and influ-
ence was probably reached in the late twelfth century when a group of 5 central Ch’an “mountains” and some 35 lesser provincial monasteries were honored with official status. It was this imposing Sung dynasty Ch’an monastic establishment that the Japanese monk-visitors encountered when contact with China was reopened in the twelfth century.’® In the following pages, we shall be looking at the development and organization of the gozan Zen monasteries in medieval Japan-
ese society. First, however, we should perhaps, as a frame of reference, have some impression of the scale and influence of the whole Buddhist institution of which the Zen schools were to form an increasingly significant part.
There are, unfortunately, no reliable statistics for the total number of monasteries or of monks and nuns in medieval Japan. One estimate, and it is no more than an extrapolation from later
figures, suggests that there may have been as many as 90,000
Introduction 11 Buddhist monasteries and temples.'? In more recent research, Professor Tamamuro Fumio cites figures of 465,049 temples throughout the whole country registered by 10 Buddhist schools in 1872 and 2,377 temples belonging to 11 Buddhist schools registered in a single han (Mito) in 1663. Of the Mito temples, 1,357
were Shingon temples, 206 Tendai, 38 Rinzai Zen, and 136 Soto Zen. According to his researches, only 38 of the 2,377 temples surviving in 1663 had been founded before 1200. A further 419 dated from between 1200 and 1500. An explosion in temple foundation occurred between 1500 and 1650 when 1,219 temples were established. In the small district of Mito, then, there were
some 450 Buddhist foundations in existence by 1500.*° The total for the whole country, whatever it may have been, included the great monasteries of Nara, Kyoto, and Kamakura, the sprawling, mountain-top complexes of Kdyasan, Hieizan, Negorosan, and Hakusan, as well as many thousands of smaller provincial temples, meeting halls, and hermitages. The medieval period saw not only
the survival or recovery of the older schools of Nara and Heian Buddhism and the rapid development of Zen but also the startling srowth of the Nichiren, Pure Land, New Pure Land, and Timely schools.?!
The largest monasteries had scores of buildings and housed several thousand monks and monastery servants. In the year 1211, for instance, more that 13,000 monks participated in a Buddhist
ceremony sponsored by Emperor Go-Toba (1180-1239). Four thousand of these monks came from the single monastery of Kofukuji in Nara.2* Kofukuji was then undoubtedly one of the largest and most powerful monastic centers in medieval Japan, having been revived and rebuilt by the Kamakura shogunate, but there were many other monasteries with populations of well over 1,000 monks and as many, or more, novices, monastery servants, artisans, and field laborers. Even the larger metropolitan Zen mon-
asteries, which came late onto the scene and thus had less opportunity to build up the landed base needed to support a large monastic population, had, by the mid-fourteenth century, monk enrollments of between 500 and 1,000.77 The older centers may
FIGURE 2: The Provinces of Medieval Japan
ye h ss ~ at Noto Shimotsuke
3 Kozuke
Tajima Hitachi Mimasaka \ bs E Kai Shimosa Par gaa Som a = = P. _lwami _ Bingo\ (Bich a = LMikawa TStomi wizue a= Awa Kaga
Harima Tango Musashi Inaba Wakasa 3.
Tsushima rs Bitchu: wait me U SS OO de
CeAe, ———— SEONG £mashi Eshima ~ Chik oar Ot Ss IS Yamashiro
~ \ ts = Izumi —
mat osay amato 3 Qi©4eS a =P Kawachi : 4 == a+4: Hows ES 2a=
Satsuma : =
sé Osumi
af
Introduction 13 have declined slightly in numbers as Zen and other new schools of
Buddhism gained ground, but the fact that they remained populous and powerful until the late sixteenth century is clear from the numbers slaughtered by Oda Nobunaga and Toyotomi Hideyoshi in their efforts to break the back of the Buddhist institutions as a political and economic force. Estimates of the numbers killed at Enryakuji range upward from 1,000 to 3,000 or 4,000. Koyasan is said to have lost between 600 and 1,300 monk-soldiers (sdhei) repelling an attack by Nobunaga in 1581-1582.”
The Buddhist church was a pervasive economic presence in medieval society. Temples and shrines controlled or held rights in many of the estates (shoen) scattered throughout Japan. To take
one example, the Shingon sect monastery of Toji in Kyoto was founded in 796. According to Professor Takeuchi Rizo, until the late Heian period, its landed base was fairly small, comprising about 500 cho in six different localities. However, in contrast to the Nara monasteries of T6daiji and Kofukuji which did not acquire many new shoen proprietorships in the medieval period, Toji domains grew rapidly between the late twelfth and early fourteenth centuries. During this period, the number of shoen proprietorships and steward rights more than tripled to 30. Most of these were gifts from the imperial princess Sen’yOmon’in
(1181-1252), Cloistered-Emperor Go-Uda (1267-1324) and, later, by Emperor Go-Daigo (1288-1339) and the warrior leaders Ashikaga Takauji (1305-1358) and his younger brother Tadayoshi (1306-1352).?5 According to an Otabumi (register of landholdings) for the year 1197, of the 8,064 cho (about 20,000 acres) of registered land in Hytiga province, southern Kyitisht, 2,106 cho (26 percent) were
shrine domain (sharyo) and 238 cho (3 percent) temple land (jiryo), These are modest amounts. In Buzen, northern Kytsht, at about the same time, out of a total of 13,300 cho, 5,141 cho (39 percent) were classified as shrine domain and 3,809 cho (29 percent) as temple domain. Shrines and temples thus laid claim to well over half the registered rice-producing land in the province.
In Bungo, northern Kyishi, a century later (1285), out of a total
14 Introduction of 6,873 cho, shrine domain included 1861 cho (27 percent) and temple domain 2,663 cho (39 percent), together more than 65 percent of the land included in the registers. Since many Shintd shrines in the medieval period were adjuncts of Buddhist temples, the weight of temple influence was even greater than these figures suggest. The above Otabumi entries all relate to Kytishu. That a similar situation prevailed in other parts of Japan is suggested by Otabumi for Awaji (1223), where 633 cho (51 percent) of the registered total of 1,354 cho were nominally held by Buddhist temples, and Wakasa province (1265), where, out of a total of 2,217 cho, 136 were held by the Enryakuji (Hieizan) branch of the Tendai school, 83 cho by the rival Onjdji (Miidera) line of Tendai and 17 cho by the Shingon temple of Jingoji. Nearly 10
percent of the land was thus registered in the names of these temples alone.” Some provinces were particularly heavily affected by temple
rights. Most of the shoen in Yamato, for instance, had the Todaiji or Kofukuji as proprietor. The province of Kii was dominated by Kongobuji (Koyasan), which claimed an ancient domain
of 10,000 cho around the mountain,?? and by Daidenhdo’in (Negoroji). Shoen in the province of Omi near Kyoto were nearly all under the control of one or other of the many sub-temples of Enryakuji, which loomed over the province, or Onjoji.?* Although the landed interests of Buddhist temples were most extensive and
deeply rooted in the Kinai and western Japan they were by no means negligible in northern and eastern provinces, as a glance at any list of medieval shoen will immediately demonstrate.*° The older Buddhist monasteries suffered a relative decline in their political and military influence with the establishment and
extension of warrior government after the late twelfth century. Moreover, like such other absentee central proprietors as nobles and members of the imperial court, they lost many of their rights in distant shoen holdings to local warriors (ito or Rokujin) or provincial military governors (shugo) during the disturbances of the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries. However, although this period is frequently described as the age of the dissolution of the shoen
Introduction 15 system,” it would be a mistake to think that all Buddhist monasteries had lost all access to their shoen income by the mid-fifteenth century or even by the early sixteenth century. The erosion of the
shoen was erratic and protracted and only completed by the land reforms of Hideyoshi in the late sixteenth century. Some provincial shoen were still providing tax income for Buddhist temples in the sixteenth century. Partly because of their sacrosanct character, but also because of the ability of large Buddhist monasteries to organize a stout military defense and to mount and sustain effective political pressures, many monastic holdings, though eroded, were more resistant to warrior intrusions than less capably defended civil shoen. Dr. Peter Arnesen, who has investigated the Ouchi provincial governor (shugo) family during the medieval period, finds
that the Todaiji, although increasingly subject to Ouchi juridical
and fiscal authority, maintained some proprietary interests in Sud province until well into the sixteenth century.**
In a more recent study of Toji holdings than that cited by Professor Takeuchi Riz6 above, Professor Nagahara Keiji identifies 71 shoen proprietorships held by Toji at different times prior to 1600.
Of these, he found that 32 had been lost as sources of income by the Kamakura period, a further 25 were reduced or alienated during the wars of the fourteenth and fifteenth centuries, and 14 remained sources of income until the sixteenth century.°” Tachibana Kodsen has found that Buddhist temples were major landholders in
late sixteenth century Tosa,*? while Miyazaka Yusho states that Koyasan in the 1590s still controlled 2,613 villages aggregating an estimated annual yield equivalent to 173,137 koku (about 865,000 bushels) of hulled rice.** Enryakuji, Kofukuji, and many other Buddhist monasteries also maintained extensive landed interests until they were stripped of most of them by Toyotomi Hideyoshi or Tokugawa Ieyasu.
The wealth and economic influence of Buddhist monasteries was not due solely to their enjoyment of tax income from hold‘ings in distant shoen. Monasteries and temples received donations
and bequests from patrons, for whom they provided memorial services. They were exempted from many of the provincial tax
16 Introduction levies imposed by warrior-rulers. They also engaged in sake brewing, medicine making, the sale of lumber and produce from monastic domains, and other commercial activities. The wandering monkpeddlars from Koyasan, the Koya-hijiri, who traveled the length and breadth of the country selling small items, produced a substantial
income for the monastery.** Profits were also derived from moneylending. Enryakuji had interests in the Kyoto pawnshops (doso), and many temples, following the example of Zen monasteries, made loans from “‘mortuary funds’’ (shidosen) at relatively
low rates of interest to the general public or made high-interest private loans to nobles, high-ranking warriors, and merchants.
Guild sponsorship and market licensing were other important
sources of income for some monasteries. Privileged merchant guilds (za) in the Kinai region were major agents of commercial activity throughout the medieval period. Many of these guilds were under the protection of temples and shrines to which they paid regular dues in return for their monopoly privileges. In Yamato province, for instance, the salt, roofing-reed, bamboo-screen,
cypress wood, and metal-casting guilds were all under the sponsorship of Kofukuji, while the carpenters’ guild was attached to the Todaiji and the Kasuga shrine. In Omi province, the salt and paper guilds enjoyed the protection of the Hie shrine which was associated with Enryakuji.*° By the late medieval period, exten-
sive market networks had developed in and beyond the Kinai region, and markets were being held regularly six times a month at
transportation nodes or outside the gates of temples. Traders using such a market paid dues to the temple, but the markets must also have attracted many casual visitors and donors.*” As centers of pilgrimage and nodes in the commercial and mar-
ket network of the medieval economy, some Buddhist temples stimulated the development of quite substantial townships at their
gates (monzenmachi) or within their compounds (jinaimachi). While the deserted capital of Heijo-kyo fell into ruins, the medieval town of Nara developed nearby as the monzenmachi of Todaiji, Kofukuji, and the Kasuga Shinto shrine. Sakamoto, on Lake
Biwa in Omi province, developed rapidly from the mid-Heian
Introduction 17 period as the supply center for Enryakuji. Annual rice taxes and other produce were brought from distant shoen to the warehouses of Sakamoto for storage and redistribution. Sake breweries sprang up, and the town became a center for local packhorse traders. ** Otsu, also on Lake Biwa, began as the monzenmachi of Onjoji. By the sixteenth century, being on a main road to Kyoto, it had become an important rice market in its own right. Kanazawa and Osaka owed much of their early development to the proximity of esrowing Honganji communities.
That the Kinai region around Kyoto and Sakai remained the most economically advanced area in Japan throughout the medieval period was due, in part at least, to the stimulus provided by the presence of many monasteries, monastery-sponsored markets and guilds, and monzenmachi. But monasteries could also impede trade to their own advantage. Many shared in the profits derived
from toll barriers (sekisho). From 1196, for instance, Todaiji reaped profits from the use by rice-bearing vessels belonging to
other temples or merchants of the strategically placed Hydgo barrier. Kofukuji was later given a part share in the proceeds from this same barrier. Tddaiji, in the mid-Muromachi period, anticipated an income of 1,700 kan from the Hyogo barrier. In 1463 Kofukuji collected 2,000 kan from the southern section of the barrier, and in 1484 the same monastery is recorded as taking 1,100 kan from the Kusaba barrier and 500 kan from the Udono barrier. Koyasan is recorded as having an income of 1,500 kan from the Yodo barrier in 1308.°? (One kan, or kanmon, equaled
1,000 copper cash [mon] and was approximately equivalent in value to 1 koku, or 5 bushels of rice.)
It should be evident that the larger Buddhist monasteries, especially those in the Kinai, were able, in a variety of ways, to exploit the growing, increasingly monetized and urban commercial economy of the Kamakura and Muromachi periods. Professor
Kuroda Toshio argues that, as their distant shoen rights were alienated, temples and shrines actively sought new sources of landed and commercial income, including the acquisition of nearby small-scale supplementary rental rights (kajishi myoshu shiki)
18 Introduction and the sponsorship of guilds and markets.*° By these means, Buddhist temples maintained considerable economic influence throughout the medieval period. From the mid-sixteenth century, sengoku daimyo, in their efforts to gain full control over the com-
mercial activities within their domains, sought to abolish toll barriers within domains, to free local markets and guilds from the control of Kyoto- and Nara-based guilds, and the nobles and re-
ligious institutions sponsoring them, and to both encourage the activities of domain-based merchant groups and the centralization of commercial activity within the daimyo’s garrison town.*! Although these policies met with varying degress of success in outlying domains, they were difficult to enforce in the Kinai where sengoku daimyo domains were mostly small and where the power of nobles, religious institutions, and established merchant groups was interlocking and deeply entrenched. As well-organized, enduring institutions, Buddhist monasteries were able to marshall considerable political pressure in defense of their landholdings, tax exemptions, and commercial interests.
Monasteries, temples, and hermitages of whatever school had devoted, politically active secular patrons. Many of the leading prelates in the central monasteries of the older schools had come from Kyoto noble families and naturally made use of these social connections in the interests of their monasteries. Through a system of imperial designation, certain monasteries and nunneries provided havens for imperial princes and princesses who wished to withdraw from the secular world, or for whom it was necessary to provide an office and income. These were known as monzeki temples. The Ashikaga shoguns also made use of such arrangements to provide for some of their offspring. As Zen monasteries developed in the thirteenth and fourteenth centuries, they quickly established close ties with politically influential nobles and warriors. It has been suggested that, in elite circles, of those who were
to enter the religious life, the children of high-ranking consorts were usually placed in Kyoto and Nara temples belonging to the older schools of Buddhism, while those of lower-ranking consorts
were sent as novices to Zen monasteries.** At lower levels of
Introduction 19 warrior society, too, Zen monasteries and nunneries provided a new and expanding “‘career” alternative for the younger sons and daughters of warrior houses.** As such, Zen monasteries rapidly meshed into the fabric of the political society of medieval Japan. Other new schools of Buddhism, the Nichiren school and the Jodo Shin (New Pure Land or Ikko) school, who drew their adherents principally from among peasants, lower-level warriors, and small merchants, also had powerful, high-ranking secular sponsors and, with their devoted, well-organized followings, were able to exert considerable local and national political influence.” Where family connection, legal complaint, and political pressure failed, some of the larger monastic centers would not hesitate to have recourse to arms. The monk-soldiers (sohei) from Enryakuji
on Mt. Hiei, who periodically terrorized Kyoto throughout the middle ages, are notorious. Enryakuji, however, was not the only monastery to have at hand large numbers of men trained to fight with a halberd. Todaiji, Kofukuji, Koyasan, Onjoji, Negorosan, Kaga Hakusan, and other older monasteries had their own powerful companies of sohei. Sohei were most threatening in central politics during the eleventh and twelfth centuries, and their military influence was greatly reduced with the establishment of the warrior government of the Kamakura bakufu. Monasteries, however,
continued to maintain sohei throughout the medieval period. When the complex at Negoro was burned out by Hideyoshi in 1585, there are said to have been nearly three thousand monks and armed men on the mountain.** Moreover, from the late fifteenth century, newer branches of Buddhism began to emerge as military forces. Armed followers of the Honganji New Pure Land school toppled the local provincial warrior governor (shugo) and controlled the province of Kaga from 1488 until their defeat by Nobunaga in 1580. Similar Jodo Shinsht-affiliated leagues (Ikko ikki) based on Ishiyama, Nagashima, and Mikawa fiercely resisted the efforts of Nobunaga, Hideyoshi, and Tokugawa Ieyasu to impose their authority over these areas.*° Within the city of Kyoto, Nichiren (Lotus) school adherents took up arms and assumed the
government of the city in the Hokke (or Lotus) uprising from
20 Introduction 1532, until crushed by Enryakuji sohei.*” Thus, until their eventual disarming by Hideyoshi at the close of the sixteenth century, sohei and adherents of the New Pure Land and Lotus schools contributed to the instability of medieval society by fighting among themselves, pressing their demands on the court and warrior governments, taking sides in political disputes, and struggling with the emerging hegemons (sengoku daimyd) of the Age of Wars.
The spiritual authority and surviving military might of the Buddhist monastic institution in the late twelfth century is well illustrated in an incident involving Enryakuji monks and Minamoto Yoritomo (1147-1199), the founder of the Kamakura bakufu. Yoritomo was one of the most determined and astute military leaders in Japanese history, certainly not a man to be challenged lightly. By 1185, he had destroyed the Taira family, secured effective control of western as well as eastern Japan, and instituted the
Kamakura bakufu. In 1191, Sasaki Sadashige and his father, Sadatsuna, Yoritomo’s housemen, military governors of Omi prov-
ince, and the local proprietors of the Sasaki-no-sho (Omi), of which Enryakuji was the central proprietor, became involved with
Enryakuji in a violent dispute over tax-rent payments in which officials visiting the shoen were killed. At first, Yoritomo supported his vassals but, as Enryakuji raised sohei and applied political pressure in Kyoto and Kamakura, he capitulated and allowed
the exile of Sadatsuna and the execution of Sadashige. Possibly Yoritomo acted out of ultimate respect for a powerful religious sanction. It is at least as likely, however, that he feared continued disorder in Kyoto and perhaps the united opposition of all armed temples if he pressed the case against Enryakuji.** Another four centuries were to elapse before warriors emerged who were sufficiently powerful to challenge directly and finally curb the military might of the powerful religious institutions. That achievement
was one of the marks of the transition from medieval to what is frequently called ‘“‘early modern” society in Japan.*°
It was into this turbulent political and religious environment that Zen teachings and monastic practices were introduced in the late twelfth century. Monks of the established schools, especially
Introduction 21 Enryakuji and the Nara monasteries, were generally unsympathetic,
and used their connections with the court and bakufu to try to impede the activities of the advocates of Zen. At the same time, Zen had to compete for influence at the popular level among local warriors and peasants with the vigorous Amidist and Lotus schools, deriving from Shinran, Ippen, and Nichiren, which gave to medieval Japan much of its vital religious character. Had the Chinese
Zen teachings and their advocates not attracted the attention of some leading members of the Japanese ruling warrior-elite, the chances for the survival and independent development of the Zen schools in Japan would have been slight.
PART ONE
The Development of the Institution
ONE
Japanese Zen Pioneers and their Patrons
It is widely accepted that the Zen introduced to medieval Japan from Sung China by Eisai (YOsai), Dogen, and their successors took root and flourished as an independent branch of Japanese Buddhism because of its intrinsic appeal to the newly dominant class of warriors. Faced daily with the forbidding realities of war, disfigurement, and death, such men, it is believed, were immediately receptive to the stoic, non-scholastic religious philosophy of Zen, which encouraged self-reliance and directness of action derived from relentless introspection, calmness of mind, and discipline of body.’ This general statement obscures some very important features of the transmission and acculturation process. During the first century of Zen development, the mass of Japanese fighting men and many of their leaders were totally ignorant of, or indifferent to, this new form of Chinese Buddhism.” They remained wedded to longstanding beliefs in the promise of the Pure Land, the terrors of the Buddhist hells, or the efficacy of esoteric incantations in time of sickness or adversity. If they had a symbolic patron deity, it was still the fierce-visaged, sword-
brandishing Fudo Myoo rather than the calmly meditating Sakyamuni.? Zen developed—and took the form it did—in medieval Japan not
simply because of a spontaneous spark of affinity between the Zen spirit and Japanese warrior mentality (this affinity was found only
26 Japanese Zen Pioneers on closer acquaintance), but principally because, at critical moments in its early development, the monks who advocated the new religion found powerful secular patrons. Without these patrons, it is inconceivable that Sung Zen could have established its independence in the medieval Japanese religious world. In all likelihood, it would have been absorbed as a subordinate doctrine of one of the powerful established Japanese schools, just as the Ch’an
teachings introduced earlier from T’ang China had for centuries survived passively as one facet of a fourfold Tendai practice.
The early patrons of Zen included Kyoto nobles and members of the imperial family, as well as the warrior-rulers in Kamakura and some of their leading retainers, the military governors (shugo). Impulses to patronage were complex. They included attraction of the forthright personalities, mental alertness, wide learning, and physical vigor of Zen monks; admiration for the strict discipline of
the Zen monastic life and rule; curiosity about the intellectual horizons reopened through Zen to continental secular culture; the occasional temptation to use Zen as a counterbalance to the overweening claims of the established Buddhist sects and, in the case of the warrior-rulers in Kamakura, an awareness of a need to provide themselves with cultural credentials appropriate to their new-
found military and political power. Although it would be an exaggeration to suggest that these early patrons were completely
indifferent to the spiritual potential of Zen, there is very little indication, during the first five or six decades of its development,
that they engaged strenuously in meditation, that they attained much insight into Zen teaching, or displayed any great interest in acquiring such knowledge. Their religious commitment to Zen was
hesitant, and long subordinate to their ingrained devotion to established modes of religious expression. The basic teaching of Zen is starkly simple: each person can, by
his own efforts, relive the spiritual awakening attained through meditation by Sakyamuni himself. The Zen introduced to Japan from China in the thirteenth century, however, involved much more than this call to direct personal enlightenment. The central core of Sung Zen teaching was embedded in a complex intellectual
Japanese Zen Pioneers 27 and cultural exegetical corpus. This corpus was formed from the accretions of centuries of development of Ch’an thought and monastic practice. It was blended with elements derived from other
branches of Chinese Buddhism, and had been influenced by Taoist and Neo-Confucian thought and by the intellectual and cultural assumption of the Chinese literati who were the principal patrons of Sung dynasty Ch’an.* Those Japanese and Chinese monks who introduced Sung Zen to Japan brought the core teaching. They brought it, however, as part of the religious, intellectual, and cultural framework in which they found it in the great Buddhist monasteries of the Hangchow
region of twelfth and thirteenth century China. Japan had only recently reestablished formal contact with China after a lapse of several centuries. Official Japanese embassies to T’ang China ceased from 894. During the early eleventh century, there were some informal cultural and commercial contacts between Japan and Sung China. Active official relations, however, were only reestablished from the mid-twelfth century by Taira Kiyomori (1118-1181). During this hiatus, Japan had moved away from its earlier dependence on Chinese civilization to establish a distinctive culture of its own. On the continent, meanwhile, there had been major developments in Chinese thought and in Ch’an itself. In these circumstances, the complex of Sung dynasty Ch’an teachings was not immediately assimilable by even the most
educated and sympathetic Japanese warriors or courtiers, and was still less accessible and attractive to barely literate fighting men.
The introduction of Sung Zen was made even more difficult by
sectarian rivalry. On the one hand, exponents of the new Zen teachings encountered the determined opposition of the established Buddhist schools in Japan, especially the Enryakuji branch of Tendai, which vociferously pressed their claims for exclusive aristocratic and warrior attention. On the other, they were met by competition from the very vital contemporary devotional religious movements based on faith in the efficacy of the Lotus Sutra or in
the prospect of salvation in the Pure Land of Amida that were
28 Japanese Zen Pioneers winning many thousands of enthusiastic adherents at lower levels of Japanese society.°
The full acceptance of Sung Zen in medieval Japan and its emergence as an independent school was, therefore, a slow and sometimes halting process which extended over the century and a half from the late twelfth to the early fourteenth century. Within this time span, three basic developmental stages can be discerned.° STAGES OF ACCULTURATION
The first active and largely syncretic stage, lasting for approximately fifty years, centered mainly on Hakata and Kyoto. Japanese Tendai monks who had journeyed to China were the principal
agents. This stage was one of uneasy coexistence of Sung Zen teachings within the perimeter of the scholastic and esoteric framework of Japanese Tendai Buddhism. The only major exceptions to this initial syncretic pattern were the Kyoto monk Dainichib6d Nonin, a contemporary of Eisai, and Dogen Kigen, who
introduced S6td6 Zen teachings to Japan. Both these monks rejected accommodation with the established sects. The syncretic phase was followed, during the second half of the thirteenth and early fourteenth centuries, by a period of consolidation involving the vigorous introduction of what is frequently referred to as “‘pure’? Chinese Zen to Kamakura monasteries by
Chinese émigré monks. These monks were patronized by elite groups in Japanese society, especially the Hojo regents. This stage saw the building of large-scale Zen monasteries on the Sung model,
the imposition of characteristic Zen monastic regulations, and some diffusion of Zen-related Chinese culture. By the end of this | phase, Japanese Zen was free of Tendai domination, and monastic
practice was qualitatively equivalent to that in contemporary Chinese monasteries. Quantitatively, however, Zen was still insecurely and narrowly rooted in Japanese society and understood by very few outside the walls of the new monasteries. The beginning of the third stage of metropolitan Zen develop-
Stages of Acculturation 29 ment can be dated from the opening decades of the fourteenth century, when Japanese disciples of émigré Chinese monks and Japanese monks who had studied in Chinese monasteries began to assume the headships of proliferating Japanese Zen monasteries. One of the most striking developments during this phase was the nationwide articulation of a system of official monasteries (kanji)
known as the “Five Mountains” or gozan system. The mature Japanese gozan network eventually comprised some 300 official monasteries ranked in 3 tiers: gozan, jissatsu (Ten Temples), and shozan (Many Mountains). The network was dominated by the
Muso and Shoichi (Enni Ben’en) lineages of Rinzai Zen and developed rapidly under the patronage of the Ashikaga shoguns and their principal provincial retainers. The Japanese gozan network was an elaboration of the Five Mountains system of official Ch’an monasteries established in Sung dynasty China, which in turn is said to have derived from an early Indian Buddhist system of 5 monasteries and 10 pagodas. In the Chinese and Japanese officially sponsored Zen monasteries, the appointment of abbots and promotions of monks and officers, as well as monastic discipline, were under the supervision of the secular authorities. The powerful, officially sponsored medieval gozan Zen monasteries are sometimes collectively referred to by modern historians
of Zen as the sorin (thicket, grove). Zen schools not included in
the sdrin grouping are known as the rinka or ringe (below the grove). The precise historical origins of these terms are unknown.
It is unclear, at least to this writer, whether these terms were in common use in Sung dynasty Chinese or medieval Japanese Zen monasteries. Whatever its origin, the distinction between sorin
and rinka is used to emphasize fairly obvious differences of style between “insiders” and “outsiders,” between ‘“metropolitans” and “‘provincials.”’ The rinka, for their part, self-consciously
declared that they preserved the true tradition of the early Ch’an
masters, a tradition that had been muddied and obscured in secularized official sdrin monasteries. Japanese rinka included the Rinzai schools centered on the Kyoto monasteries of Daitokuji
30 Japanese Zen Pioneers and Myoshinji as well as most branches of the Sot6 school. During the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries, the rinka expanded rapidly, while the gozan experienced a relative decline.
By the time the third phase was under way in the mid-fourteenth century, although it probably still did not appeal to the mass of Japanese warriors, Zen was firmly rooted as an independent branch of Japanese Buddhism. It was exerting an active influence on Japanese religion and culture, and had become a significant element in Japanese social and political life.
It should be noted that the developmental phases outlined above were neither uniform nor static. During the early phase, degrees of syncretism varied. Eisai, for instance, was more accom-
modating towards the established Buddhist sects than Enni (Shoichi). During the second phase, while most Chinese monks sought to impose the standards prevailing in Sung and Yuan monasteries, some, like Ch’ing-cho Cheng-ch’eng (1274-1339), attempted to modify Chinese monastic regulations to suit Japanese conditions.
The neat three-stage model is also complicated by vertical fissures. The pattern of Soto school development in medieval Japan was very different from that of the metropolitan schools.’ Within the metropolitan schools, there was a major cleavage between the gozan lineages patronized by the Ashikaga shoguns, and the Daitokuji and MyOoshinji rinka lineages, which were patronized
initially by the imperial court and later, from the mid-fifteenth century, by wealthy townsmen from Sakai, by Warring States barons (sengoku daimyo), and by lower-ranking provincial warriors.” With a closer look at the gozan lineages it is possible to detect differences and rivalries among them. In Kamakura, for instance, an ongoing feud developed between monks from Engakuji and those from Kenchoji.? These vertical fissures, however,
significant as they are for understanding Zen sectarian development, do not invalidate the three-stage acculturation model. We now examine the early syncretic phase in greater detail.
Motives of Zen Pioneers 31 MOTIVES OF JAPANESE ZEN PIONEERS
Those Japanese pilgrim-monks, including Chogen (1121-1206), Eisai (1141-1215), Kakua (active late twelfth century), Shunjo (1166-1227), Dogen (1200-1253), and Enni Ben’en (1202-1280), who made the hazardous journey to China during the second half
of the twelfth and early thirteenth centuries, were moved by a strong reforming impulse. Most were monks from the great Tendai complex of Enryakuji on Mt. Hiei, high above Kyoto. Oppressed by the prevailing mood of decline of the Buddhist Law (mappo) and discouraged by the worldliness and laxity of late Heian Bud-
dhist monastic life, they journeyed to China in the hope that there they would find new texts, practices, and regulations that would help them put new life into Japanese Buddhism. Although some returned to Japan as advocates of Zen, few set out with that intention.*° Other Tendai monks, among them Honen (1133-1212), Shinran
(1173-1262), Nichiren (1222-1282), and Ippen (1239-1289), who were equally dissatisfied with the aristocratic, secular tone and formalized ritualism of their sect, responded by rejecting the monastic life with its rules of seclusion, abstinence, and celibacy. They quit their mountain retreats and moved among the common people, advocating salvation for all through self-denying faith and
constant invocation of the name of Amida, the nenbutsu, or of the Lotus Sutra. Out of the one seemingly exhausted Tendai scholastic tradition thus emerged two powerful currents of medieval Buddhism. One
stream was radical and popular. It appealed to absolute faith in some exterior saving grace during the latter age of the law (mappo)
when man was powerless to save himself or to accumulate merit by his own efforts; it welcomed all men and women, rejected the exclusivity of the monastic life away from the world, and questioned the relevance, in an age of mappo, of formal religious rules and regulations. The other current was more conservative and exclusive. It reaffirmed the monastic life and rule, stressed that each
individual must search for enlightenment by his own spiritual
32 Japanese Zen Pioneers efforts, and turned for inspiration and energy not to the common people of Japan but back to the Buddhist traditions and culture of China.
The Japanese Tendai monk Ennin (793-864) was on pilgrimage
in China during the suppression of Buddhism in 845. He found T’ien-t’ai Buddhism still at the height of its glory, one of the dominant forms of T’ang dynasty Chinese Buddhism. Ch’an does not figure very prominently in his diary. He makes no mention of visiting any Ch’an communities. Those Ch’an monks he encountered on his travels—-some of them, “‘extremely unruly men at heart”’—were, like himself, on pilgrimage to famous T’ien-t’ai centers./?
Japanese Tendai monks who visited China three centuries later
found a very changed religious situation. The Southern Sung empire, although smaller than the T’ang and beset by Mongol pressure from the north and west, must still have seemed, to the eyes of Japanese visitors, a great center of civilization. Its capital, Hangchow, was an elegant city of canals, palaces, and Buddhist monas-
teries, and there were still many thriving Buddhist communities throughout the empire, although, of course, older centers of Buddhism in the north like Wu-t’ai-shan were inaccessible.'? Of the Buddhist schools in the south, however, T’ien-t’ai and the older monastic schools were now moribund. Ch’an had survived persecution better, adapting itself to Chinese intellectual and social values
to become the most vital school of Chinese monastic Buddhism. By the Northern Sung dynasty (960-1127), Ch’an had established
its own history and traditions, compiled distinctive monastic codes, introduced new religious practices, and developed new monastic and architectural forms. Ch’an monasteries—some of them taken over from other Buddhist sects and including monks of very diverse doctrinal interests—were integrated into the Chinese local economy, acted as centers of culture and learning, and enjoyed the patronage of the Chinese gentry class.'* In the Southern Sung and Yuan dynasties, a network of major Ch’an monasteries throughout the empire, headed by the Five Mountains (wu-shan) of Hangchow and Ming-chou, were eventually designated official monasteries—
Motives of Zen Pioneers 33 or at least given the titles of wu-shan, shih-ch’a (Ten Temples) or chia-ch’a (Principal Temples)—and established close ties with the civil government bureaucracy. Japanese monk visitors to Sung China were not completely unfamiliar with Ch’an. T’ang dynasty Ch’an teachings and the meditation posture and breathing techniques used by Ch’an monks had formed one part of Japanese Tendai training in the sutras, esoteric practices, Vinaya precepts, and meditation. Moreover, in Sung
Ch’an monasteries, basic T’ien-t’ai texts, especially the Lotus Sutra, were held in high regard, and some Ch’an masters accepted
varying degrees of accommodation with scholastic and esoteric Buddhism. In many other respects, however, Sung dynasty Ch’an displayed very novel features. The primary emphasis was on the regular com-
munal meditation carried on in the monks’ hall. The use of the koan as an instructional device was widespread. This, in turn, emphasized the individual encounter between the monk and his master rather than the lectures, general debates, or sutra expositions which seem to have been more important in pre-Sung Ch’an.?°
Ch’an had been challenged and deeply affected by the NeoConfucian revival of the eleventh and twelfth centuries. Under attack from Confucian and Taoist critics, some Buddhist apologists had fallen back on the doctrine of the Unity of the Three Creeds. They argued that Confucianism, Taoism, and Ch’an Buddhism were simply three facets of a single truth, three different roads to the same end. The elaboration of this synthesis helped bring Ch’an into conformity with Chinese values. It also opened the way for the influx of Chinese secular culture into Ch’an monastic life and thought.’® Much of this Sung culture and learning—whether in the Chinese classics, Neo-Confucian and Taoist thought, poetry, painting, calligraphy, or etiquette—was completely outside the experience of the Japanese monks. Even on the more material level, they found much that was new in the architecture, layout, furnishing, lifestyle, and regulation of Ch’an monasteries. It must have been with feelings of great excitement, therefore,
3-’SS -shes. aney ofteea
rteOo ete eaten ee ee(0ee |MJ Eg eonaS ) se 2fe .ce 2.: aEe 8ae saggrat dieser eeee ee2ee [_ eS F IGU3 thRE SE ee eetamtencrrnce ee esee2ee es eedais eePee ceeee cy
ee eaeODOR Ee” eee eg eeeos:eeReEe Pee ee eee ee|) ee EAEEE UE Ss ire EE SEE SSE Haare ES Pe eee tee ee patra NG eee ee Eee ee wy Es ee eee eedeeeee He ee bee LC Ce DD 2eeees Fe Ce ee pee ee ee ee ye ee ee ee 8 ce LU. ee! So ae ee ce ee ao eS ee a Ss Ss ae _ a ee ee 2 eee ee oe [_ ae we gy |. oe oe ee ae a i. ee : ae ee ene ES PsaeeeEe ee es ee es eeeeese eeaspeeeey Psee eS ee ee oe UES eeoea a: ol ae . oeee Sees 8fae ae coe of, pee MA eee PeerLs See HEE oees Beare Pepe eee eee ee Eye ee DD ee ieee eae Is Se@ OI ae eee SSS AUS SSeeae@ es oe 2aReeeSaar Reieronemancna eeHae Coes BeBeee eseeeBe Es eeepee eee eece oe We es eee eee ae ESS ESE SEE He aeeeeeee HEROES 0 ae psoeaeeeSoeae eee Sefe “ilee aeaeabial ||. Le SESAME ey eee HS ee HOSE) Re LOSSES aa Be eS eee eae Es on ee ‘ eee paar es Reade SEE Fat PEL SS
. EE aeeseesae EseeSe2USE EEE EE eee ss 8yan eeIESE Chwe eeoe. ee esi | Agata cayers poe BUA: AES? pore CES Bees eeee aeee an SS B ee oF8. eea Aes SI G8 eee kee Ee ee Ces HEE esES Ue Se seeeee ee Dee Se pe oo
LeU EU SS EEE ss Serene eae A SUREESS BESS pee eee HE HU OReRS penn aac ae ee ee Series BY EES ee ee ee NEU SES AE GS ee Se ERAS yA
| Bee ee uhg os SESE Beas pees Pent EEE ES parent Ese ges SHAE Ee een: aia US eee ee OS GES ene SOIREE BOER GIS oe Barents HESS ee eae Oe PSS Sanaa eaets ary EM et 2 ae
pee eee Bena yan ere eee eee pee ae BUEN SUS ean ares DOESURE SES CENSUS EES Oe ree ey Le Bene Oa ING Bae eee aes eee SES ESOS So ‘eh ue ei
| Co ae Cee sefeees pee_ee meee FFee peoo eee ae ee oe Wi ee eeee :ie eeioe og my ae eeoeee eeesod oeeeee ee Le esoo. ee oe asBee _ oe eeeepeoeeeee ee es: oe oe ee esBe 8 oe . a,eei es eee oeee
eg ae ages ee Hs ee ees ne ee ee ee eeeCee DOsBes Ll ate -» 2aa,NOS Se 2 oe es _.. oe Ey EAS SeMee ee ies ee i7PO ae Be a|
ae eee UIE: ge HR oe oe EME nas HOSS EE Ree ee coe fe ee ho; Cae NemS 2 ee eases oo|. oe ee LEA) LEP?EB GHEE PESO ane Pee eee Bearer eee HFRS ee eeeeeeae esee SORE? ee ee & ae CN ee a SW We cea Ye ee Moe EOE EGG ee Sas eeNSPSS: ee ae etUESee eng) ne 828 gms oe _ aanSe _.a.gles a peeeeeee eene eaeAES ceSMIG weeANG See SEES ee ESS a oo WE EAs as HN: a8ae oe oeOneeeei ee oeeee eeaeee Eee ReeAS ener ese ire ee eee eee Bere gees 82 22 ERASEse SURO GSES IBSed ESSE oe ES: ie as isha oe aaa are ae Bh eNOS ee
a EO ee EEae eyeae ae ee ee Ce ee CC a a,- pooe oe ee Le oe 2CC of eeoeEES Oeee ee SsSet—*” .JESS ee ey on Po ee eg oe ee ae JOE aesa Bes Se ue ee EGG) Laps EG eae eéex®i oo |es cto oS See (oe ge a TS es eee ee CC J oe a oo oe a i. 8 . May ee We as ss es ee ee eee ee ee oo ES a ee — ee ae fc ae Wee Ueoe eeee eeee eeee : so esoe gaCo 2 oc ie oo oe .oe. ee Ss aeEs ee ee ee CC ee ae oeon . ..... « ae a
AT Agee: PE EOS Berane LESSEE USS SSS eee ESE LESS SESS Pe eee ee. ee eee cee Pee eee DEES Ss ee Ss ae (aes i Re aaa m AN Rees EE ONG eee LS ee He ak OAS uaa eee We es: peste
|WReee ue ee ee eeBnpour Sepia ee eeGe en agree SO iaFAN a Kio ee Oa SO i ais ee PR Us Eg ee ES eeeeee See ee ee ee ae Ok ioe Geo eee eee eee Brame eee eee eee eee ee eeeen HE etaeee Apr enees eee oeaye reer PERS HE Lae amen ON Bt Haoa ca eae |RAO Hh SOMA nalTy ie alin: yeeae er eee Pia ic 7aa." Ga an EN Pl eesiePee ee ge Bees ee Wie ee ae ee oe aBUaeaoe oe ie. a. «“| Meee EES:ee ee EE os,igaeS oeES eeores POs eee ee De 2 .eae oo oon a iNe is Te Nig, Pee ES We Enon me DEES Sees Geaya ee Bee De eeeeesus Bea Oss ae Fe sekSe ne pe — eo ee oe a)iCs aaee heaes
GA eee SP EEiecee a HIER eePR nae a ee BSE ES eas ee ieNsay a aeSUN eeeBe Ge ese OeAahs ae ae NS a eee en AIM oe 2 ALES enedHOT eenEOS Sore ees ae ONSIinn 1oe ae2s Saree HEE: pecans arr ete eeHe ee Neca inten eeSOS PA eeae oe See oeBF WR ON Re Te 1 ears ca ie NC cia ee) eee: | eee eee EsEIE EEE AsHea aa) OT, ROI 8iyUE ESGis RT? aanSEIEN ESE) Neee ee Lah eee hile ORI oe GA enRSENS ae
Wee eee aa Pe Wes ee aeme CeCs eseepee neo Se ESeee eeieas oeesoeGaLeiia:oePe) a aaneea aeeeeey 2 ee WES ee i teee ie Noe ee INO: eeeaera HODES ee aae Seaeeoea yo fe ee ie: SG Be lscit
ee Loe a. ee 2Lo es |Bee aa) ge 2oeCe flAaa ae an aoealee WG .fieae D ae,ae eeae ae sie eaeeee eeae ae) aue ee aae7 uate, ec ‘nea be oy. ge aeBs Nees 2s 8 ee ge& es De Tesae Vleet te iGe ee) Re eer an ,We eee |a,eePURI oe oe ae ee oe A oe Paes aCOR oe GON aaeaaGG:. ae EA er Oa i eaan aaeeMe a esoo Me inns teSEEN a oo aeSSe. Dh nas ee eee oe . eeSsaee able ie ad ofae )CO ahea oe” ee aAoo ee oe ol) oo EEUU Be ce | ene aae veseian a(ae eee Le|)ae Ni| aaa al iRie Bee eT ieee ane. CRE taee eepeeae aoeerr heey oe GU. Oe MNae ee Ue eee alae ie cian ania oeee peace aes Gn eSaMs AN re ae Te ae la Pee eee Sihes: Oe if ee — oF ue ae Oo iy Bee lh PG ieee ae ASS Sul Ni Mp fel EE BE SORE ee as ee rer Pea acad SO ea a, eee Se SHS ESS EES Reet Spneey: paeeanrt es ee eon HSI BSS Pau Aik a Pe nene ey oes A SU ia Salt Seeiaaiees Ue NS ia RO anaes Be Bee NY A eee TN: OE Nic NN: ey A
Si eee epeeen ESTEGs Cfee: aae) (gel WalSalen Bn iiei SUE Ce ees eon Mie SRE te ee es Ne ge satel ee aeea aan ee es oa RSE al Bi ae:os oan eea: eeiY Li aae ee ee A) eee eee aey ee ce See ‘Fk eeee eee ae aaNe es ye aes Bee Ee Laan aeealia. ea? ee.DOs: oo.all eeae ee A ae ee eeeg ae” a acai es|So oeee, Eeeens eeLESSEE a.aeenare _ LOG ae aLoaeas aMi oe. aSeiieoo” aiaN eeialan oe ya He Co. ee oe On aeoeae ae
8 ee @ — ee oo A Co — os coe a a ee et 2 a on
e Be i ee oo oo a ._ oe -.. Wee a i oe ae cae a ye a.1i... ae ee ee eee oe Le _ oe a fe i) tS ee a Ue
HU MsaeBeeeiaPe)ae| POSS ue en SSDI Oe a alte ee ee ova oeeaieSO Oi Pe ie:Ne enON ae A gdaoe el aee2 ieeeeee ae Cae z7.eeoe ee) Me Iae Wie eees eee aie eeie: aes fe eee HOH Ng 4 Se oe a, EE ae hl: Ce ee ee a . ee say. i ie, aa Cpe. ie — ce ee ee, ey ae : ee. ‘i a ea ice oy TAY ak Co ee a oe < a oe eee ce Oe ae ee ee Oo ee Ce oF a. i ia as. oe eee oe Cee |EQS: ee ee, alaeean ESO Pun cons eae a MERGES Ree AStee eeeee yeESag oaSua lete:6Lea aeaeAae eee Pe a ies UAE)eo ls Aibs peesee EP ee Mian es NB Me AME)ee eee eS |) ae Be Bea Bi | ee ee aaaTae PERSEee Oe aie Ne aeidl ie yeah ZOE oe Ee ea a teepies ST eaeee ae Sg ee ee a eg i) ee ae a oe Ca ee oe yee oo ye Oka ee a i ee ae of es oa. i. | i ee a eeiy ere ne ee SS ao hU Ge Cg _ ee me a on a. oe 7 oe Sipe eee |2 Se a Sa iicoll See SEES age eee eS ee Neae ae Dee SeBe aOe) aaeeaeeeOeee Baneo te sma ew Beha) Mi eS reeaeee RG oN Mg Se ale (aaa WM oaBe oe eee‘RT eeaS aia era _ 1) Pane’ Mit uae pee pee BC | aaa east eee * Re Nee oy ee, in aa ee ro i Lee ae EG lee TO i Ce A eg Bees eg o Ae. 4 ee 72 ee ee Yo ee we ane Yo ay oe 0 uk Ca ie eo a a ee es Me 5 aay ‘ : a | aes 2 oes Te Nee Rs: ql DON cS es ae Oe: rae _ Se i ieNenee ah ee Ne: ne : as Bea hae Iece a iil enema |eWO ane ee ee|Le eae ee SMU ee,Se DM Blige on. eo ih aeeoeSU Peeae ica iSe i ee ee es eee a.,SUNN oN. eee a oe Leeeaie: eae| Bee ae ae ae oe MN aie MO 2 SN ao aa a oe en, MN NG ae ls ag a ie: ae ae Nee ae ee ce a ae PSO eccspea ee ee ae ee ee ow _ | | | ae oe aee es oe HONE ili _. eS ee a -aaaaees Coe ee ae aoes ee ee Te alae a ie oa Cn: oo Bly wow oeoo. aeeeoS a. eee oC DU |.oeoe ok ee§eeNs oeWoe eee Cg a aeee aeeePe ey iaee |||
SMM 28 oss Spa 2a Uae ER ee Ce Oe BA SCO As, a NGS Hey ae es OMe eM Pee hae TS aaa ees ere aaa ERS See 2 ah soa ine Lal sae ees ee eee ail PA iy a OSU AN Me Ores soe nee A | ae PEPE Ge ee Sais Resa Ree gees Le POSS ey tees | Nae ye Oe ee, MoS He, Raa. Leah eee aa LE ETN Mo 20: He eer pan ine aa. Pate as PN eae ae EES ie RS) ae i eens Ee:
gees aeoo US eee ee ee ‘ oeuc oo ee We SS ,.A iw Oo, Son Ge Als [SOS ee ee . ~~ oga Sanat i ee AME: Tsaye oo. ee ee Co aaee aee. ae oN eea. oe. -. oo ae ee —ooe ail aSe ag aaeee:ae _a, |.i||aeaa|ys aere oy |ae aeeeoo no 3Deee | aa | _. Oe ke oe ce oa 7a oa ae oe _Oe. oe ee ee pe : aoa De ee aae Se — Se i, re ee oo | cr id He ee ae a: age ie aAone eres oo Leoe ee ee Aeaa aeee Be ee ee oe oe PGE os gh eerie ie oe Beeee ee PRR ae aeioe 7aCO) a ae ce aaFeear Awe Oe eg. ee ee ot ee a oo ae | acl oe > a) ns We ae ee a , . Oe, i a. B Oe oo s Gg oo Lh Ae ie ee Ce aa a Danes ae ee aah Ay RUG a! ‘Gui ee oe ee — ay ee | ae 2 4ee
2atiol J ak ae aBES CO aNici aeevaeee ae ae &ieaLo oo Ge! ee onaaioe ee. a..oeaee — isi. Lk eee ee Saae, eee A ee oy ee ioo a He | ee we Se iya2a (ElaTaN Ge io. on eh i Co. a) Co oo ae a Lue, ees a. aa ae2... OE Lo Oo ae2 ye Noy Ce eeas SO aSa ie aaey Wes oes | oa Me? .ae 1 th om , oe ne oe : i | oo oy i a eesiSeg2 ee Cee eee cee aSan oe ia o.. ae oe eee ENEeeeeQ Oe)fa ee asTO ee a San an: ae as SEG eat oo we seen aawe Btoe . NeOR es veOi: —.iee i hee Deeer aeie see oe ae oh be. Co cen, .— HNieON aie OG. allBe Sn iis Oe Ce 0ae. ee oeie aASa) os Oeoo a|.a.(Bt ea, i0ane A ee ie ce, Cee oe Lo Le oo oe poe oe ae i a ae ae oF oe, a Hee ee, i ae oe — oe 5 ae ONE UR A EES 650 IN DS aR ee BD a sh Ue lO eae See eee SHR et) eee UY Pin NG aig 2 aN Pg oe EOS Sg Dae ee Bs ge Gee: ESOS BE | es Wi ee LO eee 10 ae f ee ee PUM EES eee ONY Ee SMS 2 ae. Dee 5 inl NCAR SU TGE CaRaO PA a a OR Tes Le Ree Gace ee ae Poe ae i i ee ID asco, Sea ies Ae CR ah ee ae ge,
Gas HII SM Mae et)a in oO :ae 2 ee a)‘esoes | See eer Esssane Fe NC ais DePO ayBee) aeeee Hh Aesnop eeSee sai) liih) MNS ee 0 nur eae Eeeeee AS a aeee ee)Til eeeay Ta alaees: ee an). WMH SMIee) SE:es ENS a Sad asaGAGNON aON Gee eee EES te LOS Fee) ree cil ase fr eee, ie oa Gos ee Hoccsscoe. a aa OL EON A RG eee ihe We a ey aGes Oe 27.Sa ae asahaNE osCeOe Ree ae Tiered Bate nee
Bi pe eee Os sitee BA CE Nae IaaSessile. a2Bee eeae ane ie iSRE 6 aeON, eeHs de es.eaeNi CEN aeeee Oe orae ae ee0 a eee LAR Reae eee: TeaGONG A asem: ON NeaaeTSO eee | ilaie aye Rea Bay as: i ie i FONSI ay Hc SAME ere” uae ay eee_ieee Bs ee a UAT re ‘Ieee an aee eSsae eg ge -MS es ee oe. CC yeIoe oo iSee aae aes ee aee eee ee -es We eet) oe. a Ly ee oeyee a a Ce me ae oeOe aoL i oo 4ae ae eeLe Ss onoe eeioon Pie ae ae oe|aihe aoe aeee oe peeee ee ae ee ee oa ao Be ee ne Co ia aer ia ee Ca es Pr aie es A ES Eee oe Bee | ie oo ees oo Le _— Me an a =" Cli ae a Ne: Ce oo BMWs MESS ny Sea eee 2 oe a Bee aneR SO Ne a Ne a hae eS SM ee Pees Soy UN ge Hes a i) a wed ON! A pa ee ee aoe a eee Dn ete rare Ba) eh as ae eee Bed hae | Siar Ly eee ane \ eae ee a Ca MONS Si oes eee ea, a ee 8) Laisa SO a aan i Oe Reg Os os ae iy a ee BN ee eR a PR 8: Ue | i aeeeeeog | eee a Ca ie: NN Fe aSakeeuesneReeeeatae i Hee adage ee ieHe e) ee eees ee ae eeeBeene ae Bee ee Seer Pee | Se OC: at: Bee ee aeyaeeay ee ea CO eid SR RR a Es aye Wg ees eeeee Ni a) OOM eeete eerBEA bares vie ee etce, SOoS ii ACN eee Mic ES aea paeeeee |||ee) eeeree, peer.es || Seana eeee ee Bere | Bie 235 eeaeo lee a eG a ae aahes) Tees Og | ee aeaEs aa NE 28 ee Be aap) tt TaAya eee aue ee aMAHAN IE aWyBees |.eee Ns oo es ce Lee ee u es Geen uae a are eee) aeae 8ee ihe I ee pe eeeSLe aaa Ne Nae en ek i Say. aeHee ick PG aOe aoe ee ae eo oeee oeee aes ee ae No i,NR. iae oy ky . Le maaaOe — .MS ee aae es aaeie ee ee lV y7Ceee ee oo oo Fe aN ee 2apeer aae aege aeeae ee ee iUN aeee eee os oo oo aPOs ae Ee
ee ee ee ee a ee LD a [_. Or a a a ae co oo... / oe 7Ce aeae=. oFES ae 2oo... eecaoe co ia)a eee eee feooe oe >a 0leek aCee oo Coieeeae eee Cifoie: eeeeiale aeeesoe ; ee ee” aGR oe aeeee ol a[ sy iaYee 8iTae 0|2oe Weee 2 eeeee pone | eeei aoe peasa | one eee ieae i rea. a | a oe ae a Moe oo.:Te Lae 7 oe aLoy ay a. Gee Ce oe x»,weoe. 0GeoO oeLeoo a. lines ee ONES Ey Ne Me MN EE: Peer Vii Be IG eee SMMbUIN 2208 eee) Bee, gels tif FS ee SRS as pes Rag) ia CON eT a a ae eee cee ae |) Be) a Le Arannee EOE ee NNN HO eG ie ne sae uh NS eee as. Pe Se Rae
(ee ea area ee ee | ees nae cc in ae Be) eee eee | ee (og Bere re ill Di ee Le ee a ee Le al ees Se y i: SOU AGS Ve eee ee oo an 1 Oe a Lo eye ety Des
ee pon aa:iad )Sam ce ARN ES speer eeae eevege aoe ee oe ee ie |Ce ooasLS oe ee Ds eset eee ee eeNl"Ae eens eeeee Ne . is .ay|oe oe Lo Oa ae Sie Ce aaae ees Loae eee ON: eee eee oe a! oo oe aOeFae esMi oe |ees Bee | ee eee ae ceee Ge oe oe a iaeee) ic, ae oe eles ESie oe | ee Gone: i.aeh Cl ae aa
MNS 8 GSB ES Ree anes | ees SLs ey) |) repre BEES eae ee Bae Se (aera 1 Wigs ee oe a aaa any ee on Bese Ror a ers 4 iia Cee Mee aM Gi Be one a Hae ae ss eae Ce a oe a ees see
a ae Oss EB . yeCO eee aOe gan i og i Wing eee ee ee aeaeeee S ee Nepean Je Me cee Pg a ee ee HES ee aeas i Lo co aee OEee Aen PEE -Us By ooon le a i ee et|ale a Mete ee a| aesae ee ee Oe Ge aeasSeEs ee ve. 2aneaaeogaan ae iu, ee Leaeeee ie Ne Sige eng eoa aiee aeae pe oe ee a- .ee oe EN ee oe IN, a ee oo ee ie Ee eee CO eS a ay soa oo) oe AN ace BER) ae Ua eas Bape ae Se a ee eee rece eeeae ERIN END LES aN EM En a Bee) (iNGani Ae isa Pe i aaa eae ee, Se aa aC ee Sigeees ace ee So acai tyse ee Fae sae SO) aes Bee NG eS ie NS oii! ae ye a c 8. oC ae Ce ae Fee a ee oe ol ees Ea i | eee 7. a oS ne ee ( oes . oe
aBh Lo oe ib. Le aeoe hee Bune eePEhees oeONS 2S ke ee ae ee Ss a, aePRS a aae Sig ceRa!aeeeoe ae Ae Bea) ae ae Me eee aera Bseoaaa GENS aoeae ee 2Pee eeracer ON ice ee beh pee: Aeae Re SH eS i eae Se eee tal eal Fhe ee Cc oe eee Be) ee ae BaeDe REED A ieaeats Soy CeeWe ae eee NC eee ee ee Sliis a vl, Bee ee OLA SSff. eeoC SN els LS eee es RES ogaia aeBie ee a eee Te ieaaa | teaperaee a a ieWey es Bese eee eae eeGee aew eeeeeer NG REE Cssoe eage, Be Bo Ge 1s ia ce Yee aORM aBeaeeeee a SEARS aeeaeeaeae Ssieesee ey rae) PES oe (aoe es ee Os o/sane eaeee SS oe See
Ce Ce anae Pflee eeeelea oooe eeeale ee Wes ca i ee oe as oe PERS eg oe oeNE 2 oe aoeNe ee as, ee olaae Ce a ae ee. 7 ee . Co 3Oy aeTen eeaOeee | ae aoe oeee oo a ee |es.eo og
. aeaieata mea aaLool Me 7 oe. Lr eT ae L. i oe, : oe ae fa ae Me) he oy oo .. ll oo . Ae nee: oo oe
7. ee oo7 (7 oe oF :aeooAewee eeis oe eeoeoe i oa |.oeoo SSoe a ;2. oe iiah) ny a3gen oe oo Aet aes Nae oh 8oyOU oo Om aoe ee. ge ee aioe ieSoe ee ae oeoe ae Cas aoe Se pe— eee ioo ee ee ee Le aeg aaeS Pe eae alee ae i ee Seoe i Sis. ayes, oe we ee i La ae ale eed oe ee ig ee ee ofAeegat »ae iin, Oia aM a oo oy ee ce eee ee| :Oe oe ooaoe oo WR oeieee eo eae oege.es We: eS ene ee oe. ee) ee a Nes nee NE ee ee | ae. ee eee oo ne aa Be gs ares ge eee: a ae 2 ae Coie ee ne
SIM 2 ge ge ee ee oo MMe sss LET ea aes Pe IT par ee | Nese? a Sees By eas Perr PR SO CN ee i Nc ed ANG: ea 2 SN GB “eee ll eat eee ee SF ae De aie Bess
By aaa ge Se as Re eee San oe fh ieee oe Se) ae ae a a ANE Bs a aes eae TaN Le re eR see Rit) OC tS TOE Be SEGRE ee eet we Pe ee Me ae Beal) | ae Be ereanaas eae a Vee a
UN ees BA nh oe Co eyesien ae ey eanee ES a ee AvA eeFe ae ee oa. eek: ee FOMate: ae oie Ee ee Seeee eeea oe of Ae eos: | ie,ese ne e te es Be OM SaiDON UO Eyate Geeats Ss ae eeSy Coo Weeae ee er eeeee ee Naas ee SahnNE FU I ia fee speek SS)LO aaaeG ae ee aean ey oey, Nic ae Me NOt Oenanny ne EN ee Ce es gee eeA) ah oa! Co ee eon oe
Baas as ania Ss ee ue ee eeai;Be ee oy aes eeaaaa ee ee fee HaeBO a) i es aeaLoa ey ae Iessee Sasgeoe acyeaOW eeos ee| HP OM oe a ae eee Ce a7 Reieee eea,aes |oy leaiaeee~~ ooCoaoe ao ijaLo 7aeoevkoo aOO asyeeea ee ee, iaeeeae so 7 Fe oe a a. oF oo _ oe oe oe . a a2 aa 35)eeeeSaeaaaIESeas_ie eee1eee 4 A 4 a oe a ae tah fo A ilsa eeRe ee ee HDS Oe aeSEER pee a ae ee ee PE. i ekTOs a Oeas:Ti CeMAIN a aehip as"ee Lkeeoe ea, Ae eSSe|(fe Bee eeegCa ss Pes: |ee Bee2iHN al we Oe he | 2 oe et Se ae Dae | ae a es aa Neos Gee ee eeeDE eea Bere eee ili? al re xiLsYaa oe) . :i ae eres akrecee i See eeoe ee ae ee A ONhae i epeea ee | enoo a peBS ee eae a) gs a Oeee ee ae Oneee ge ae, ee aeoe 2zeaeeeoe aaSee Bs oe y oe 4 doa (o (8 Lee .. fa — CL es i oo ee eeOe sf aes ee— Seeee eee Rees ae ae ae Es ere i ee ee 1 Seer oY ae i eee Me CMs SM ee ar ae eo. hay ee Nag a oki ee ee, weOM geeee eeaaeLeI fi 70OR 7a aPe| wT a eo [7Boa | UT Goes be ge Hl oe 1 ae eee vary aerate Bee eee SR init Pa He eeSereD? Re EE) pron ROY Sie Hh eee say i De A RUG ana eae CSN aie Ia a aaa Mee ay as eel SOL SN eee i en bee nae ee sien: PES Re SNM ae aig age ee SAN ON oe Om
es lee oe, eee ie®Be Aeaabe ooAa.aoeeeeNG ea a ee Psaaleee a eeAS eeas 1 ae oSNe es Cn2 Cae) GeaesDee aaa HoRENIN: ONem oeeeeee aSEsSEE ooi ee ne:anes Tay es iyUe: inal Be SENG POE eee AUR ie Tne: oe pas ye! eeeeee peer See ae SA a Ge ae Coeie ik Ei AAG eeeoo. ee oHa ROSS MOR Maal ee ue Bae | aan 8 HOES ae oo De: BI ae eae CP Ee Us sues Lge Bees) | ceoeneaenee eae la,,) SASROL ee BS a a Di MR: EE ile clea Hees OED Re Gs A aa a uc Is, SAAN: Rati NaS aa TaN tN Be ign rion ge eg gM ee ee Baa) oars te NENT SE a fg EEN sgh Se ener ce UMS oe eae UE Sm: Ye:
SO Re PS ge See eee 1/2 PES os Teer eae aaa ae a ities aoa: es Te Reo eee | Cs Re Sa Soa Oh a aa seat Oe ak oN Ales: eG © a ae ae ee ey Os ie ee SAIN See peraes POM EE: UBER a ei a Eg gallg. Ns oe aE cles aU 1 EOE Haare ee Hae ie a lt ar er Ws eae Oa ee Cee I ie ie ae Be | ere (eee a yes, i ee, ak: Bee eae aesea Began ee)eeeeeemerae fe Geman SE ee: SHEERS eg eeoeEO me MM Dah esEe: Rag: ae EE age:ae 7 aAe oe aEos assey beeFe ae cS Ome oe NC: se pee(artes eee 1) eee ees AEE I ae Pate ee IING eeoeoes esRoe: ee eee oo aaeMee Beaniatinogogiaee: i i SHON:
MIN BEES SESS aera peo apeiae ee ee eae arene YES on Pass ee ae Boece i) ee ae ee ale ce we Se ce fi es ee iH a Sa See gees ee es et: Sage: ee ee oe | ioe Te Be ee age ee gece ee eee
Ae eee er ee NE Es rE uae BUI a N : He 1 We: SENN ne eee oe | aaa ee ei ees | ES Be eee | eee Mageecours BD ee eee) Te oe) a IN eae
es ee ee a ae Wsof Le ee ee oo | si oe7ieiW 2 oe ee oe ae oe ae a a“Hie oS ae cee Le La eo ‘a.oooe aBie Mea: oeBears aDessay eee Va — reieie ik, eseo Coee on aveoe oo Biog eae LOee eeiBe a|ey aaiia: Seege ti” le A ie ieee NTaereVe ay aia oo oe — ee.Be oe| oe ee 3 ae ee G ae as ge ae ee le ryt a — oT pe Soo eG a P | ve ae aM Co We a oul) MGealgee ae~~. eeEe 2ae|Nees ae aeee _ee oFee oo. ae ‘ale eeSea ene s oe oo (ie ees Cong ae il a ane ee SEAS? i es Oe Fe ee |. Pee Paee|ea ae On ol)gt a aee ae Cae ee Aoo at) iey ee eeee DS ae aE ee aPeer eeeT aeey I2ae Osaac SHES i aaeneree Tioe cae aaoe kk ce oe Le a oe ee oe ist oo e oo a aOO :. -i asCo as ie eeaeisesBs ee S|2.aee on ae os a. Deeo ee ge .NONE a eS oF eeee.Ny. aee oe La oe eS Co Oe i— oe ee Le Lee Ne |eee ee ce Ue allloe Sas Sra EE ING aan ae eS BEG ERS Gaee aee— aeee ey es Se oe eaeNeue eaeaae y ee oe Bie eeeie luee eee POae Gee ae aes Ps aaaae ee Oe: oe sere Oe or ee A oo ae es 5. oe oe, Be ee Lo ee Oe as er oe: a ae a ge f oe ae as Ce ae es ee Ce Ce ee oo a: . oe i. oo a oe ee ee a. fe a — Lae ee je lo as ee ve a oo. a, ‘a ie Ta oe el Mig Soe se ee a aint a 6 oy ie ae Oe ue ne ee | ee ye ey a" Ge 8 a oe of. se, eS et a... —— ae | ye oe oF a ee ;iiDe oe ol oe ee a ae Wet _ 7. os De De et en ee) =— a a OM ae: MG ee oeaay| ee, ae a ae Oi EOC ee ae Wig esaee ee .1 oe | eee) oe a Ber OR) ee) kg os eaae Ree4Oe) be (oe a ae ae SS ae rg oo a1lee: aCsLoe ae .RO eeoo ee aee1Le en eeaeOY aage aeeiol ee oeSa asLo Deeeeeee aa aa|.eee Be) Lie eeee ee eeDES (is ee oe a ee Hess J)aPe eee eect singel salk ee peices UeeeeeRE aeIoo. es ee| Ieee eeee: SUS OW acini eeae eee. keesUR ae a oe: ae ee HRM OU Ons Be SE WS WU AE GR ee ee aa eece ea hee Pai eeeee eee Cl HOU ee)asoe Aoe ees eePeSO ae eeBy Le a ee i ihae | aa Ue: enGil eacaae Se (SES Ss ee.Co A Mes HAGENS Me aa anee uaeoo SEES ESSPs Beets CO a genre ee aeaeeeO By a MG ee: oDBee ere ee aleeON i a okea ee ae Ca aAMES Ee a wy | Ce eeMNeee a eS loi BC heLe eesew aes ae eSUN aes aa esee i Be eeoo BNE eee oyUeES FE a. |. ae a oe a i ee. ESS eg. | a os Co 7. a / | a ae a Le FO pe Co So Doeae kes eee CO esosee oeee a ee a.ee Cog eePO eaaaae ee geaCe a ee. a aeivos eo ioy ee eeee. aeaos ee ee ee 2ee a.aoealeoeaae geo ae aeaeees | ae aye Oe ot oe oo ee Ce —. es ane:Ae Noe ne eeue Se aRO ee es eM Ws jtws eRtgen aa as ea 08aIa ani: eS ee eeee eg ee |oeae eeeeTee me Ogg. oo Ssae Usaoe ae ee 2a.oe i:a _ ee os oe ee Gee ae ge a ee oe ee of Ns ae oo o eG Po. ae 7, oT cae aes |. ooSs . ee oe oeBor ees gea a.BONEN oo ee ae ee US eeiis aee Saasaga ae, Hi ee nae eeA lOO iis:ae EON.ES eee rsae ae Lee ce eeies eeae ee) SONS ASoe BO au eHaHe 2areas ee oe oeaeaeye ceo ee OE oe We Mea — es Ae: Fa eee a Pe eg Oe Woe | aeneiseee as ee Gses ee as Oe a ee eee ae pe ne eg ee aaeAerBee Pai ae ooosa aieee FEES Oe SUAa Bhteceyay oeFe eeaiIN iS egHine Ae oN nan UN rl ee esOm Le cee LOpee Me 8 Pha AiseeSees a | nae? Aig iReneS: ene pee NE: fe aa Uecali OeARN Uicipaii Preee Meas yaaiaeeeae RautiM i |ieRae aa 2M ee he ee Me aae ie ee | aaa GeaBete es nnaLe Aacin fe AN DON. enenene pee HO UN ee a Be nail Te SI Be SeLoy aNee Se eee ie Oa Hea) a nNilien core ee oeeeaw bi ee Reee eae Sa:eeAN ee| Peete ie ye LSM Ie Sneens Me ee are ieee eaeFERS WagesRE Finiseeaii Nseee ee 1LRM be
Bei dean A th Me ie HN gee el Wes INS Ea Os Weer eee || Len ll Ca a RMR 2555: eT) ce YS eae A eS ai: at a ES NS ere ne Bee ae ee a gees) RE ae (ee eee De RUN 8c Se | Sear en TN BG a
AME 88 ES NE IN as ae me Seer PAGING IRE | FAI 6 ie a eee ue, Ed agg ace fade Ne ane Bums SS SO Eee ee) eal es oo SUN, Baoan! pee rane gee at ON I Ga Min es: Br ee yao ATS ODE 2S i ae a Games
eee a ie eae | Gee Wie Wee ee eee ee ) eee ieee ie Mes ee oe ek uel sca semen oN ANP ES al ee ees ee sade Pe CN nee ee al ll ats om 1h eee ett a ee iol aa aaa Oe lee en
ee Se a a oF , & 7 ee et OP Cee . a ee . 2 ae eg a pee ee ee a Ge eeCO DM geo eo Le OW go EEoe a oF ae eee ee HOe en Le . es ee eee oy. oe ae Ce [_ .aeae TO a :i Ge in, ig ees es BO A oe ee oe pe ae oo ee eeee Be e egUSE i ae. Boe a HN es ee | ie js es og Li eee ee ee ee i ee ee ee a AON |.ata1 Bes fo eo oo ) ee es a Oe Ce ie ge 0 . — Le po i i ae ee be ons ee we ea a oe. a i oe. Ce. [Coo. OO7ees / a ay ae oe) ot ae Pee oe “ ue oo Le oo TN oo) oy oe i. a ee a. . ee 8. Ce Ee Te i oo os 7 ee ee er ee a oe ae oe aea ae 2 Ae HES ee eee ea aS WE ee Bs) op ee pee | ee ite i AEs Beene ree ee gO aauee AN ES ee ee ge ee ae Sos “HEAUHUS 2 aaa ae ESE ee He EN Bea ORAS Os saan See MPs eae ee
,aoeee ey.aLD ce i oe‘oh a i:ayee a eeee eeaaeee he oe Ce weoe— aeoe eea ae We Bo ea oo. oe oe oe ee La age oo ios aeeCe fe 7pOUE oe aaee (cee (a Lees oeoeae. ay ee Ca a.aee ee ou eeseaes ee a oe oeooes oe Le ee aaaon ee oe Le oo es ooee Wee oeAc ss ey eon ee yoee a oo aeoe aaa 3 peas a HOSES Pay | oe DE TE NA a Re Be ea eas A Wii ee SEU SEE) SLU ees PES wes pee oN ata od) eee Cs ee ee ea Cie Ree ae, UN Eo ES Ma i ees eee yee
Bee a NE ce eeaca iNine SeesSe ee 1Wie a a llRC eeeay Niet: * gees perenne: Jeeee) ES eee ES PMS Seas ee Oe HeSN eeeGees eel ee esseear ae Berna, ae oe ee ee Ga) SENS Ba Reo ia a aeee Ee apa: UM ces fe ee BN Pes Bee ee ae AGE eS HER ESS BSE Wie awl Dae One Geek ee ES ea He eee BOE ss ere ety eee ae) Te Bee | ‘eae Rees Be one J ON ‘aaa ES Oe Peel ieee MMe 8 Coe ag UE ES MES 8 ee eis AC IN iesies Skarea ae OSES Es OM i Ss sip Sc ee oeoeUe ene Rares SM5h MM ss ees SE Seeee (QUES RAS eatia Keer a RINE aTEN ae apKs PA ME NO aeee Sern areas Beoo aeee ae Bee eens oe ee ee. ee ea UtBEERS ie ee BEE aeMes: Bo eee SEG SEES es eeeaee BES Nie Gyee Mes a IN Speen Ieeee | eae See ee cea Bl Perea eeeae nr PGRN asiaoe PEBEES eaeESET EE: Eeeas MM SE ee kt eae ASS EON: ae Eety ESree BePaes ee tsme enesay eaPe, CEREUS eS ie UR (oe Bi eee acts NCEE AS
ee
AO RESO acaae eee ae. ||ae eeoo eeoe COS Se eege Se ae Maa eee leSa ee BOS Ne geeee! Pla UN ONES ar i pega FA, Saal ae aeaeae Os Eee OaSe eeoNLe ee iesWe Sa | wo NG SNOT ae aes oe eeOe fo Ce ae oe CM eee ee ee Oe oealy aoaees oeaee: aoe LoCec eeaan fiaaea ooere aeEee oe
Ca Nea I | ARES ID oe FIONN mM SEN Wee 2 a ee OTe eee (eae eee PEE Es pera.) Saree OO aN Ss Lue oe eae Bee sa eR ee aug oe i ul BNR C2 Pay OME Bes es | cM ae ie EST a
MM MNS ME geen: Pr ee ao peas Sr | Se Magee oe SNS Se: aera ee Oe ee eee eee ree see EON IS Se ee SU UNC eo eg a eee a es bi Rk ee eu iae ee lig GIN RSa es pie EE Ce ae sae eeOs a Tee ee iyees ces es poneee tee esSee Rseees eePee ee enema oe ae oeeee Beas Wa Bee aeBRR Be aieaM Raia ee BAe Baas 2 eee Spencers see SES ae eee eeeeeoecee oe aeeDR eae eegeeee’ eaRON eeeaa. NSaLS auyieaeeen ee ae ESD A: aeieie aiyeeeeee Le an St aaUNG eee Ee nha ReaNs a Bete I Ba es ee Se aii cae Oat: Camere an seOUR eeRS ae He BSes ‘sigue 4 ee) Be ee geNeDIE Es a CeeGeen a j ‘iEEBae une DU TRS auRoe eee ann lai on) Ny aie SMaales seTeTa asPH:
ee ae oe eeee oe aee eeae ag oo aFO oo ae al EE Ce ae oo a. eeae Pe TN ae So EU, oe eG eeOe aOns oe eee ee eB ay HM Lee ae -_. oe ey nad ae oe ia aoe es RE oo oe ee Oe 7| oii inice — en OS a ee ee. Sgaee Ce eee aaaa eee ae RO an ae. oa eees ee ee SLA es ic os ee ON ee eeaoo ae ae Peoe ee aaOl: ais i ee 8ene ee Ne 7 aSRG eee |oe en eo Weg a2.fsCo le Coy. Ce |.Goes |aii —) |aee — eee SES eSav ear a onLe ee ES eeeesieae eeee eaehe ce he senee feeBee a OOS ae ig ain ne| nee see oe SOK Fae De ig Bee ei payi,ae EE: Bane ee en ee eee eeTe eae eee ge ey eee eeine ee es ee LieeNo alee ee oe. Oe ae oe. oo og Oe ee agoO aGEE Be eee fC of hoe aae :Ce _oS i ow eo eeee)oO oo ass oeoeCe ee 1eR vee ee,Se oe a,i Gee aeeoeWee oeoe) ZcoMla! 2)ae | ey ae Ue
ee asaOe oefe«eeo:ae ee ae eeVa eeae ee iae| ssae es el iloF neoe HEEESy ahaA_. be on ee eee eewilh ueee a. oe ee eeeeneaeaea le: ee ea ies ee ee oeoo. Se! Ge ge eeanid ee Oeie | ke ol i oeae siieoanesiie: i.aes —e ieoe oeoe ae . atal a ee oo Aa oaae aueoo aAoe ey fC ee a ee, ‘ a aes a ee is 6 oF ee LG Se | Cenp a beeeeDepaeags ee olLa ee asava CE We ae eal ee Bee eeOe us Be oN ee a SN eae aeTSO ee Ss aeSa CoaEGuo Paes ea OG Nes ee NG Se es ae ee Se Ee ae. ee eg eePESTS ee ee, ae. ee oa Bi Ae oe. ee lepe uaaSet eee Hy ED on oN eee: Wi MSsee ee ee ee ee Sag all Hic.ee Rene Pee ae ORs aCa ee eee ne es,eee aeaeaee Mia ha ee) eee aoe Bea oe ee a aeMi, 5eea7. Lacs eecman eee oeUees Oy bal ai ce eee ee. a ee an ang es ae A iin ek ao es ow Fw a oY |ae: ae ae eas ee oo. NOs oD Cas LUNN EE Dae ee ig eS Ns ee ee gs Ce ee ae fe Ge ON ee a Saeee 3 On Hee ogntCes oeTc aeseres A yu i su — eat ae ee eee LESEOE esau Oe ae AePOR pi NE ap ae B® oe :SNS ae, ae iiitiicas aa ae GyeeBete Pee eesGBS one ee Heae eeee OSeeosoeNS 2 a oa ye |eee Neee
Eee LON ee Slee Ca enoe eles Se aw aes ie are Aes aseae sini ap Obie ilae ll8Be yaaa siSMAI Bes ee ee”. eeENON ie:pa: RON TE eege Bee eeeaan ee gs eeeLO eaeaie Ueeet ug eS aint 3 ieee ans MOM ce eee MEle| ee aeeeGrr AG eeROM Geenarae oea OM) pie a OM Oe BIN asCe RESOO UCee GE eeeA Pe ae TN Ne Bes aseee SIS Seaee eeeeCe ieNa ee aa os cae Ben! aaa Gan A eu Sine eal eeae Bead eaeey Leee NS Goins AE:se MseG: BO: oe Hee AY oe Bee oe PM Ge: ee IN Bee) Ee eee aaae SOMES Dg Oe i we ee ea ai alSUBIR) Me a, Pili Ne iPE Des eae aeaeBee Tr) ABeesaM ae GES IG oeNeBeaeaural Saee USmit ON Neaesee Pkoe: eeeale pees eee aio Feease esiAMR eo oeCy aT4Wig Aeaes MONEE: SMayEN) iespee i nee Cea Ee.
|aeee oeee ly ee ceeae ee aoe eee i aee eee sy ae aeoe eee | 2. se oe aPU ete ,OS fe ee cS oe eee aeaee aCeoe Go. Co ee oe pT ee oe oe oeeee ae aeos 2suey Oe aga ea, 2ee ee one ee ee _ oo or " ee Qe “oe ee es oe ee ae : 7. ee ae a ae aeFy ae : eee 7a.es oeaeaateee aMe aeeee Se‘ioo -, ON oe ea as i.aeoo ee oe eee Bee oe a | oo Wa oo 2 Bes eee ee SN ae oc ae. Wes: | i ae ey a. ae ee a ee oo ere. Ee RS oe Ue Be:oe eee HO he Bre a ARAL Be ae Oe GOCE ee a ENG Nie elee ee heee ee aaoe NS 2aeeoe 8) ee eee eee oe ae a ba, _2|eae 2ceeae oeeeoe Ce meg ooee AG Le oo. ee aeee)es ee oF i|anhig as ae eeie. eeae peFGees eee oeee aaaopane oo. i Ck aeLae a
Noam Qh ES aire aie HESS: oped ey AGAR ECE gees ee satiny De Hee ecg OM NS: SARI Bishi aie ACU pani Rs ea, Re ee ie Pl ig saree. ages SIS age 2S EES ak Beate Ae UES a: Beier), es ete EG Nios ee EEE
ES SsNe Lgeaeee ts WOME: ee aaa ere)eo | de Cuan a ae aeEES: Ce pane NOE: PNi0!aeesoeee al arene . BtSee aeaeeeDEES a eePAUSES ieee a ato aitUE ig ial 8 ON ay eeOeUe uals iya ee ueGeaeuaeIMIR a 3G ye RN Se siaca See ee escali: ee eeieahee
ee Oe oe SN IN eee SeaANa eeA, oe eee eee Ue 5 eae Es| Gaede) oo eee ie eeeee EsesOe cies Saeae eefeeere ee eeeeae ee Ee MONIES STON: Allge Me a ESCanine ee Ona BERTIE ie Gaae WeSe a ER: oe Oejg eerie Moni ee ees ee Ep ess Ree ey eee
A Meee: pe er es er ee 2 eee fea eee oe oe USN Oaaiie< EN Se Baie eee em | Rae ee ee eee | ease eae QU eee Coaee a ees a) OS ae Beh Meena a ey Hay oe a
WN Es SUR oe GG Be eee ae ee at eeeine WUE 2:ane aeAneel NS oiaeOO iteae, GEUSES SCO iyOy ene iM LLoe2 teas oe ete ere areshee esate ca aaaee a| Slea ks ane Cae ny ETlieRON ee ee ee Le aeoeceeaeeee ee ST era ee lO eat: aS Bi ee eee SealeIe a ye ESOe Re NR: Oeoy ey Ra ye dee ee) Wik eae ee area RMie! oe SCCe ee: en a OES eee ae ee|LN aegh ee aeae sefees. aeesee 2i iIseaeee to 8UNIS aesTeOo ae. ee oe 2CnSTfe ee aaPEABEDESS eepeeCO oh ON ae .eeae eee JIE ANE: eaeWace Biase Boh ae eee ee’ee Gee Hae: acini. eee) ae NaN DEON GE eee eres SEB eae SSN eae Cee aepane ey eee eenone ae Bee a, ay Pa Lene ea OME oS BO) | ia aNeENA cacheee BeeNas CoaSU oNvaBlige Dail OME Agee aaa) ea ee We EEee ee LETTE Ee OAS eeraae 2G enn eeee i eee Seae eeu Ee Le : Pas aeSue Be? 1pee ae oo inhase esanne ee My Pe ee oe aeeeoe cc a OU Bet ee eeSonne Bee i ase tow eaeOy, 7. yee o. .eeoeoe aBeMoa—— ai BePANN ee Na ei aerecial Ae Pe oe te aSDRBeooge 2. ali aeaa. aeape a. o ll NE Hatta panies aie Mees Gouna MR eecece Ce aly oe abauaa UM ane Rae a cueees Gooe eee SOS ee es Aloeieee ee ae ne Sue ae NCGS Us: premiers) LON: eee er aad ben sete earee NYiin esiGES PUG Seaaihe a Se Rae es Oi eiPee |iees: aaaNM gies 8Ba anid sate ibis eGsee a4 PTO REA aSaa ees ESE aM se)oy Chin: Roe ESS ee ee -Laos. Ae ee Gun cecanainill as ioe7oe TU Sa ee ea EEE Me ee ee oe eioe aaUee ee ee a enim Lee a Cge: ea FM gud ai ae i. ee Re alah Ze ee Re ees EE CEN ND Sap es Slee a ae 1 oie ae Oa eee Ds ee ue a. Co. ee Se Gee: ge ee (2 PUREE Le es oo be age a oo. Oe ee We ee ee ee Rema’ oes a ee EEE eee ee : oN ae ahs i io oe a oe ae aoe , oe 2 ee | ee ESE IS: RE UN ie RO ae a can Bs: ieereare eee t ee Se TEN TOR se jira an egDeke nha iyges ee: enn Pea : ae Bea aah Le fesse stea Nes Be ak SS: oS eee MEEPS |ees EEE IN ES? ELAR Bae ssSE eee SEESee SE SRE oo ee ae — on i a co |. eae Lae | ee AW eee ee eee i oe | ae Os | ae La OM gO oe I Mg 1S ESE es So 5G 0h oo eae ae A ae Nae ee ee eee ae eee
aoea oe) ae aaTe eeee7ai“7Ce we a2 Oe ESee hoa Le eis ae eeEOQMIMIE oe aeoe eeHERS, | ee ee oe gees ES , | oo | So Coe Co oe ee A aees eee Ce De oe eae AB AN ee EE ee ae Di ea ee aeeeee ee esoe Eaee aTe age. co. MW esae peee.ee SHE Wy coos Cee ee Re ee eeoePe oe PERS i ee CG can Is ea
a ow Le io ohm gs Oo a a oe Ie on e : 9 ’ung-shan emen ° Librar BANE SIE SE)
a RMN cs DO OS aes oe oe SCE NS O Taken f ermission Komaz to the Gazete l lSuppl ty° tTokyo. , ied y P ; tof Universi
x opmgen® ae aie ae2oon eee ae Legegiss ts
Le Hees oe oe etefeeLee ae reas oe. (ena oh peeeeeee Bees:ee ae é ce A mee a ete eee os Pes
vd ees Sens —, eeges ee HESS He oeoea He Leeeeeseeecee heen
_— fe oe ea eee SePEs ae.eeaea ee eres eee ALES eae CEE -_ . peae cannes aoeLEE pa PeBRE fo ei a gee Fae) BEERS ERAT on eeepeers es eea.eee oe os 7A eS eeey PIS, panes ae ShEES gsfies A a ose ed Ou eee es a) ee SUES Brae 4ae ee BETS ae ee ae ee ee 3eaae ises paee ree Oe aoae eei ee ye:BERS oo. ee ue oe Boe ee)piece EeBees Reeihe Bigs
a ESE BN Eee Woes ESaan ue eee SS: Hea ieee oe HEE Pees a fiersae st ee . | 1es 4aff a,oe eees Lo ve. eepoe oe eeEgPees & ioe FES pores NM./~ ae Hee esa ee ete Sea ait fe te i peu iiaeoe PEE ALO ae oe fe One ae ae ee_ er: . ee ne aeg ee2ane oe aOEE Q |i wee / 7. LC -;: i‘:ee 7i oe aSF ne se: aie eee eas aeyee Ee eeoePot EES oe-eeeHHUES Je He" mn Me og ae CT og eeaebe pe eeae HEE ea Oeie om Aaies pen iudgeins
:;neee yoy Ne. eyyaaAH: we Loe ae esEES Ae es oe eeee: ee oepepe ae SsREeae cess: eehoe ysa *oef. aoooe oeUSGS pee Ags ee EES ee eee eeRea EE phat eee HSee ee ee ae ee Be earn abetry Mare cee -eeohheh BEERS oe — 3 sil Me iy a .Cn, sa genes eeeeres Bae aee a eee EEUES ee ss faeS Bene BESS ee : EEE ane ea ee Bears cera ee z z“yy iing ae Eee ESeee ae oe oe :eee eee eee a eS ey ee BES ¥?Sia “p Pi, POEs oe aSAGES See Se eee nie ei Es aeegugiess ae anSees Eoiutiye ..we corey. .: Ry oe a Ronee BESS ee eeee eae oeesTE eee eee eeae EES DES “:jA . a~“ eas 3ee: aea™ . : “at Lil ,_ eeuD oeSS ee ae HS Eee io ee ee aati ey EEES ee Bes HESS EEE ee ES ee ietsses Ra ng a%Me aekoeee oe OSS ee Esene Ee ee ee :EG ee es oe oe Cee
ag Mi ee oe |. i Ae Se oe ae ee Hs es ee le eee
eea ‘ie ae om ae_oe Es BeUES es Sener ae feo eepce HEeeeeEEE cs eS HS es Hee tenes Pe eS SE aeLINES oe ngnaees :2 oe 4 4»ae : aShes _ie:1Es 2 io eee We 0HENS ES! Ssrenee aees a Bese EEE ERE ESocean una peeEee poe OES oe na Ses aoe EE siete it : ae 3;“g= go / oe |j7 \ lo/ wae Bae pe eeee a Ppa EOSee APE EUSS IEEE eS aeee BES SE: evans Paonia SESE EES a epee aes atorsate 2 Aeeae as POU ,ie ioi— eke"aoa)DEES ee pee eee A Fs tees ee ieee eefSEgE foeee Fee ee ers Eee Booey HES lpg :pee = Se iake
.oo - .Ji._3 ”| cc | :: |I :aeaaoe ige: eee ee osa cue eg Cate aii Avie ofae Carre Cie aes _ain ;We,me ss "4 :Ne$aio;: -we
ha m , Zane yp | i . oo —— a ou Cae oo orgs al ot | es ee ae et | ox i ce:4 I|Lo mr A Brant ree eeeaoo7 rs Ly fie / 7| 'aws a 7ieaoe ao ol aae ee ee3BS ra: tity . gig oe aaaao >aae ae 7htseet fe ainSo: wes 0) ‘ ee | oy : yoaoo ne oeaapet a oy SEL vO eoA oecoy oe.0— aldie geet Hee
a HAI oo peYe ge ie ots ae oe Sees es) aoe Dc EM zoo ee eeLae ae ifAaeve Rae onan Sul _Meet ee ND Asi ae yae ,/_ee “ied :4 :”|| vs | ..ayHE 7Aes Lo oe | ies wie yoNepoees aCo beake oe iiff-ee _oe a:ine ou) .8 oe loa ae aaa 3.eS +3et:“oo pet :a aaya) oe ieieoesaa|ae]ass ee. ashe ac.eae oo a eal i aeies FG Ht sda oe oe. aWag oe Co ooie a |eee 7 ok ne oy| ae ig a aa Ae oo 1) ooaa-] Bes Wal oe 7 we me Oe ae Be ile ul oo ae ey ee al a: ue a Ms a) ae: ae ce oo a ae i Pie i i o ae x lei id i See ut eee: ao | ir a ene a) ae Ce te oy oa ee oo Ze ’ “| i
veeeyie aeooo Le > i an te ees | sine in ee oaaee a aae oea oe Bek Rs oe a cee a ae we oe ee ee ee oo y‘ i. coe oa 3 ne“Ae =4a=:f4' as ai ONG Do aeaoe iesae Belen All Wee ae os Lo dk aeay aecaAow Ly De aBoe ee oo ayie oeas vecit oe ign ae ae eeoleae ee Oi oe ascum ai Ss es Woes ne ae oo iesi — — “|aee -Kei ‘ioF :a aa 7s oo 4Be:ee ieDc giCs Co ng sah ae 8ise Lee ee _eeio. oo ae ae 7a Nee iai —— oooe Le ay ae ie Cae me ofhe: 4coceoo ae ae aoct Gs riNae eee cas oe eeMe AST ae oo eo aeas ae Mi oe ye% Veee oe ao na 2Bhi! oe AUS Bis Ae7.i" Con ee aea.ee aap oeen Ce nae aan f oe es os a |2 i Wee )i. eke esan oe oe aaas ee Bi 1ae Be Sa Los 7;8| 4fialyag Ce je iune _ea(ie _: aeos oe ce nee oo Oi oo an i:ee le oo .Heoo aiBa aEsaBeaM: Bn a ee oo ce iao.18ae ON, oe Me ae a}oeWA yee) ae De A Oe oo ee anil aee an oe ees Lo od »ing .oe “ AWie 4anesee 4vee Hy i:eae: faa:an, 4ee;eee :LE sPES ‘i|ioeetn‘a iiu:a,% yIys aaND ee aeon fe) ey aa Bai os ae me ee aro Ne ea ae BR aea:ae oie asl ee TN ase Bee Bee asn oeGOS Aeae ae BeOi COMO re ie en aeh aeee iiilpie aao. eaei seLEN: aae ae ee aneAe: iiaae oie Dek | ao Soe Ohaeve ERB eneBe On aN Suge “EGA Epake sys aPaohikee ate Onefveg Ac SUaoa eee eeee ean Baal eet me MO ag aa Dee elTe ae Pah No ieMaia) |oe a Dele ul ly | os eee A,a Hoey al seule: isEas ee * z Be i2. a ae aNoC (ee ie ae a ee a iay/.ie ce es a Dae oc)A aeSe ae Lae a oo. 24 |oa 3 aZ 7. a s a2 a—ou, 4 aeg ae oe : oo oe oF ceoi ae aa ce oe oeoaaat aaoe oo aN oo on, aeeape SS) a, ge aeaae leaoe i: ufoie. me ne—ot.oeoe 7es i oe atoagual t
: : an pe: ate: . .i 4asoo, oe aea .oeEtromee _ ia.Ua 7. eZ ie| aay | ie 8,i ‘and oe a — on ae es 8‘iaS | 2 oy 4|ee = to lp PS ma # ‘le rr ‘ es — en 3 ro | ew ms i iy oe fy 4 oo oo Lo oe te } fp) re J i eo ae ca oo Ns a a peed ae ae ae We ee) hee ee) ey i oe i Me i Te ees ae se ay oi a i, ae a ee Ee ‘gee Vid aoe2:iaoe/pe aasoeGiae aeeeaiNOeee aec ee Cael oo a7aerad a ao ~~ ae i. -Aan Le G-ae|=-OR ie ke cnn aTipeakee :aeoo oe ara A ay oe Lo a4 2aital La oe oO aecae ye a((eee aae oo i BA, oeree|an’.yee Sale oe a.ge| oe 8aeaif2i~a4ea ‘Gomme oa 3 ae eeis er >a a a|aa aeea om ek— aoes ou aoe ia oo oeee co oe 2. oa oe He es B® iD ee GES Bee oeeeosoga eee i me On aa mh ee oe a sis oo me neBee “| Ay a :a¥ae: ‘ iJ ee , ia Bs Mas eae ay ihe me Ree ee Va ae a re ee ye the ae 1 ou lh is We Wait, iG , saeah Hea ee ee on Hi ek Bilt a ae eh ay a (oe Oe ae a ee pee al WN es a a aes ae NPE Wore rie: ates Be ae
Co oe ae ee aBo a ae aseee ie oe of, oe oo We aeiSbne a aUN 7aepions _taae 2Na .ae 4oo 5i. Ras rLoe :13:imagen i: "|ee r'sik < afCe e :pes : :i _.go, ao oea ee uN ee) oe oe _. oa eaaie oe an eae HOS be“2 aLi eae ee Glin one AUR? sone a As ‘aa ce uy A ieee: —ae an isHN se Goes cae 7oe \,iaera a:FECES a:oo /Ma 7Bee ‘6 ly . 2| IES za" i}‘ :.i joae s ae eee ee ae Ue Gal ee ae eerie hae AIOn illfess en oo AM a, :at = :Pas 4ioe"AOD : citi i Ne isa| ve |xnae Sag " ini icy, isan Ns ooCOM aeaWe ae ie |oe eal Se aee er_|om ene EN
be oe oe. _aoe8 aae8 aaReeeSa:a eee as fine es aiioe ooae4ow oenee is me a.oeasmee / _Ae : *Sos “ |a bs: - Ly os FaN| : wfee ‘ } Pe iWas | . te a aL LNG Mai) ae ge te a “Ee !ifaa;eessilaoi oo at~Eee _Wey |oo et Loo aaHENe Nokes Vez ce aae ee .we a|ae,‘ asif. ae fe Bi. ae Cs aio= oe ae aiaPag iarene on ees eee aCe iaeola! aoaliey aesAew ok iTMe f’ fWes fy *_\Pe =oeee si 7iS ldBE _iae 7ittpiee .,Pont|eeae abee aeee aBee ae . oe oh aee. aaos Oe ee ain oe| anne p:aWee Me ios eh a eeSal Eee tsWh caeoe |ae esea _pa 8 ee Wisncrs ig Wes Le Le aa oo) |ae ie Le aae: Ny 7 1af nlie : ee ; iioBe |::Gi PRR eS er oa ae iea ae ee 1AM Raith acon Mes onoeMe oe aaet aoyae il3oes A yced 4 ene ’a.ae sa|Bote |Ms Ba aune agen oe ataha ee Sa Nous a) Be oe eee ce a ee is ca) a ee aee aleaE: oe | pee a :Coit ‘i aaenalllinn 8 Pal ae aN BA Nay: ieeeoyBee a a He eyOG eaOa Bee, . ee iyee a taae ee ape? Alt coe ae aeee sh oe eeqa _
li M — hie i ve 7 7 _ as geek |e i vos 7. EL. a a ens 1 Fil 4 ee a a | Lo oe a TaN | ie: ee ee! 5 a a al of oe oe a ees oe ee Le ee ee oe i a ALES es ae NOM Peas meee ai anya og eee aa oeee alePES) alle ees ane EG iateeWee hos eeADi oFeae aPESEE ee— is My Re: aBee ae ee lyi_7¢i44 oe my 7ae ae OS 27 EEN > oea Tia | oe cece he se ee oO i ere oo 8Be Wee aSa— 1 eS :a4eaa6:"JAe A Fe Bay ise4oycoe ea aeAe: anes hin a ae Mee ai beats sola es ae oe Hae: — Agune ae ae Cee a,a~ok seo y jay~| a: |: cae eecae ‘ee tian ee —Le eae anepee eh ne R ‘ig ae oecae Rr ‘nln Ai eae Ge ai>a. aa eif ae es aaeee Zag——e Ulpede Lo SAR oeONO eee fA WON Mane ii Nae BO Alas neoo eae — a oe oeie. LS aoe oeeS e. Oe pe st : od i.é ‘|at: 1| i woe aeBee Yaa ensssanye ae Bore Myoo oy Wee oe Be J.:2ed age. | oo ee ee one a 2_nh~\.ne: ve , re a” Zs ig aI 2 . sos = : eo! Le une ae i oe es eo a Ws oe — CS io oF a a u ma ‘, : ‘ ee lee ee a aoe si Lier paises ceenyesane ee i, eeeeens ae a oa iilee 8meee |Gasil—— ictapebh esESES eeGe eeGe ae ee cee aeCo aie — . le : /eo oe a| eS : ¥,:=|:rO.a=| | Os Gi aeOOPe ieee ie ee eee Doe Pe a.ce.Bee is LS MS _7aEA %re ;on' vi SOAS ie SIDI) eeeoni eee pecoats eesBee oT ‘aiaoak: all aapee iinet DES Oe Sa haa ae ee NES: ee ees PE eeoad Ont| IA Hla a are es Na ae: 4aoeie Cae a ss _* ao: 3 aes ee oe -uisidanaiik YS sed mone tS i By aa te pias ai Oe peed we aan re ee : a —. aus a J _ ae ’ = , a d - |' | We La ae ee Laoe .ee‘afoeaese eeeeBes — ee og a fe ee . Ci “yea ee eeMy|sige - “ayNeene: *|."ss :% a - cn eeee on aHEE iG: i Noes ie IM“et ee oe oeae uO Hic oo. fe she ae ee Be) ea pee (uaee ce OaaaeaaeiOR pepe hat > us ee i,eeee . ae@ aPoe fm aae oe ag | oe ge ee ae hi Es a, .7 ie~3 keske Le ee ceca ae Soe we ssme aCOG out eae "i a ee Aeseeeeae oe [| aaate 43me” eer ao4 oo. oeeee. asEee ‘DaOe -1oeows a, 1 Le es Fa aAs ta ae °1Bilic C| Cy aae oe Aece oe oe ee aa4.ia ae ea Me ore aemi a iea oea. 7. At 1i4Paes aee Ne Bae a ? 1 Wee e geth°ation l u} ngs, eallewinc d tastery w panese Z‘ < J th aser Bi asmitori to thores, rest d J°
36 Japanese Zen Pioneers that the Japanese pilgrim-monks enrolled in the great Southern Sung monasteries and set themselves to pursue their quest for enlightenment under Chinese Ch’an masters. Even if T’ien-t’ai had lost its vigor, in Ch’an they found an impressive, vigorous, and viable substitute. With Ch’an meditation and discipline, they could indeed, they believed, revitalize Japanese Buddhism.*’ EISAI AND THE KAMAKURA SHOGUNATE
Myoan Eisai (1141-1215) is revered as the founder of the Japanese Rinzai school. Eisai, however, performed this role almost by accident. He did not originally go to China in search of Zen, nor did he ever break finally with Tendai, the school in which he received his early training.'* During a first short pilgrimage to China in the summer of 1168, Eisai, in company, it is generally believed,
with the Japanese Shingon school monk Chogen, visited such famous Buddhist sites as the stone bridge at T’ien-t’ai-shan and the Buddha reliquary at A-yii-wang-shan. Like Ennin before him, he
also collected T’ien-t’ai texts and studied esoteric practices. Although he was aware of the dominance of Ch’an and his interest in that teaching was aroused—he put questions about Ch’an teachings to the guest-master of a Ming-chou Ch’an monastery—Eisai did not actively pursue the study of Ch’an under a Chinese master on his first visit. And after his return to Japan, for the next twenty years, it was esoteric Buddhism, not Zen, that Eisai practiced and taught. In 1187, Eisai set out on a second voyage to China. His motive was not to study Ch’an but to make a pilgrimage through China to Buddhist sites in India. Only when his request for a travel permit was refused by the Chinese authorities did he make his way to Wannien-ssu on Mt. T’ien-t’ai, where he enrolled under the Ch’an mas-
ter Hsu-an Huai-ch’ang. Eisai spent more than three years as a disciple of the elderly Chinese monk. When, in 1189, Hsu-an was appointed abbot at T’ien-t’ung-shan, Eisai accompanied him to his new post. Before Eisai returned to Japan in 1191, Hsu-an recognized the Japanese monk’s enlightenment and gave him the seal of direct transmission, authorizing him to spread Ch’an teachings in
_ Eisai and the Kamakura Shogunate 37 Japan. In spite of his long apprenticeship in Ch’an, Eisai did not relinquish his esoteric interests. He had found a compatible mentor in Hsu-an, who was interested in esoteric Buddhism and advocated the unity of Ch’an and esoteric teachings. Hsu-an also stressed the importance of the Vinaya and insisted that Eisai, before proceeding with his studies in Ch’an, should formally profess both the Mahayana bodhisattva precepts and the Hinayana precepts. Eisai’s Ch’an practice, thus, did not involve any great wrench
with his early Tendai training. He was able to learn something of the new doctrines and monastic practices of Sung Ch’an while deepening his understanding of esoteric Buddhism. The emphasis
on discipline and the strict observance of the precepts in Sung Ch’an monasteries provided him with an invaluable means of reforming Japanese monastic practice. The threefold experience of Ch’an meditation, esoteric rites, and the Vinaya gained by Eisai during his second visit to China shaped his subsequent thinking and determined the character of the Zen he taught upon his return to Japan. After his return to Japan in 1191, Eisai proceeded to build temples and introduce Zen teachings, ceremonies, and regulations, first in Kyushu, then in Kyoto and Kamakura. However, attempts
to spread the new Chinese Zen doctrines and meditation practices in the capital by Eisai and others quickly aroused the opposition of Enryakuji supporters who, in 1194, petitioned the imperial
court to have the “Daruma school,” as Zen was then known, proscribed. The court bowed under pressure and a temporary ban was placed on the propagation of Zen in Kyoto. Eisai attempted to defend himself and his teaching. He pleaded that Saicho (767-
822), the founder of Japanese Tendai, had recognized Zen as a genuine teaching of the Buddha introduced by Bodhidharma from
India to China and that Zen had since been accepted as an integral part of Tendai. For Enryakuji followers to reject Zen at this
stage, Eisai argued, would be to deny the intentions of their founder and the traditions of their sect.
As part of his defense, Eisai also compiled the Kozen gokokuron (Promulgation of Zen as a defense of the nation). In this
38 Japanese Zen Pioneers long apologia, Eisai argued, in a characteristic Tendai fashion, that it was to the advantage of the ‘Secular Law” to protect the “‘Religious Law,” since Buddhist deities would, in return, protect the state and Buddhist monks serve as a spiritual leaven in society. He
then asserted that the essence of Buddhism was to be found in Zen, and that the life of Zen was itself maintained in the regulations and precepts of the monastic life. Since Zen was the purest and most vital expression of Buddhism, it clearly merited the most active patronage of the secular authorities. Eisai’s arguments won him some sympathy in court circles but did nothing to deflect the
opposition of Enryakuji. In 1199, he decided to make his way to Kamakura, the center of warrior rule, where Enryakuji influence was less oppressive.
In his youth, prior to his entry to Enryakuji, Eisai had studied at the monastery of Onjoji or Miidera. Onjoji had close ties with the Minamoto family, and this connection may have helped Eisai to gain a favorable audience in Kamakura.’? H6Oj6 Masako (11571225), the widow of Minamoto Yoritomo, founder of the Kamakura shogunate, appointed Eisai founder (kaisan) of the monastery
of Jufukuji, the first Zen center in Kamakura. Minamoto Yoriie (1182-1204), the second shogun, later provided lands and funds for the building of Kenninji in Kyoto (completed 1205) and appointed Eisai founder. It was for Yoriie’s ailing younger brother, Sanetomo (1192-1219), the third Minamoto shogun, that Eisai wrote his treatise on tea, the Kissa yojoki (1214). With the backing of the shogunate, by making himself useful to the imperial
court as a rebuilder of temples, and by adopting a deferential attitude towards the Buddhist establishment in the capital, Eisai was able to establish a small but active Zen community at Kenninji.
Eisai was not the only monk who attempted to introduce Sung Zen teaching to Kyoto in the last decades of the twelfth century, and the anti-Zen polemics of Tendai supporters were not aimed exclusively at him. Kakua, who was probably the first Japanese
monk to go to China deliberately in search of Zen, introduced Rinzai Zen to Kyoto before Eisai.*® According to the Genko shakusho, Kakua, when invited by Emperor Takakura (1161-1181)
Eisai and the Kamakura Shogunate 39 to explain the tenets of the Chinese Zen schools, answered with a melody on the flute.” If this was the first expression of Sung Zen in Japanese court circles, it must have mystified the young monarch and disturbed his scholarly Buddhist advisors. Kakua, how-
ever, seems to have established no temples and trained few disciples.
The monk Dainichibs Nonin was also active in Kyoto in the late twelfth century.?* Nonin never visited China. In his place he sent two disciples with a copy of a verse he had composed to demonstrate his enlightenment. They had this authenticated by a Chinese master. Thereafter, NOnin devoted his energies to spreading his
brand of Sung Zen, the teaching of the Daruma (Bodhidharma) school, in Japan. He was an uncompromising opponent of any accommodation between Zen and Japanese Tendai scholasticism. His defiance was an invitation to hostilities which Enryakuji supporters could not allow to go unchallenged. Eisai seems to have been embarrassed by the aggressive purism of Kakua and Nonin and sought to disassociate his Zen from their Daruma sectarianism. Eisai never finally rejected Tendai. He was
syncretic in outlook. His aim was to reform and strengthen Japanese monastic Buddhism both by substituting the newer Sung Zen teachings for the T’ang Zen hitherto accepted within Tendai and by reemphasizing the importance of taking and keeping the Vinaya precepts. Moreover, in addition to his interest in Zen and the Vinaya, Eisai maintained a lifelong interest in esoteric Buddhism.”? He taught esoteric rites as well as Zen to his followers and built halls of worship within Kenninji dedicated to the Shingon
and Tendai patriarchs. It is sometimes suggested that Eisai’s accommodation with established Buddhism was carefully contrived to allow him to practice Zen secretly. His writing and actions, however, suggest that his eclecticism derived from conviction rather than convenience. Even the practice of tea drinking, which he had probably learned in Ch’an monasteries in China, was advo-
cated not as a stimulant during meditation but as an esoteric ritual conducive to the harmonious functioning of the bodily organs.”4
40 Japanese Zen Pioneers The eclectic Zen espoused by Eisai was continued by his princi-
pal disciples, Gyoyu (d. 1241), Eicho (d. 1247), and their followers who were active in the Kanto region. Gyoyt, besides teaching Zen, opened a temple in the Shingon stronghold on Mt. Koya. He also acted as the officient at the esoteric Buddhist temple attached to the Tsurugaoka Hachiman Shinto shrine in Kamakura and, like Eisai before him, held the office of intendant of the Todaiji in Nara. Eicho, likewise, combined esoteric Buddhism with Zen.?* It was only in the third generation, with Daikatsu Rydshin (fl. mid-thirteenth century), who studied Zen in China and converted Jufukuji into a pure Zen monastery, that esoteric and scholastic elements were filtered out and Eisai’s line began to advocate Zen exclusively.
Although Eisai eventually established amicable relations with the imperial court in Kyoto and was granted honorary titles by exEmperor Go-Toba in return for his temple restoration activities, his principal patrons remained the warrior-rulers in Kamakura. Eisai’s disciples were also patronized by the shogunate and by such
leading Kanto warrior families as the Nitta, Shiba, Uesugi, and Ashikaga. To judge from the Azuma kagami and other contemporary sources, however, Eisai and his immediate disciples were not
engaged by the shoguns and their retainers as teachers of Zen meditation or philosophy. Their principal function was to conduct invocations and prayers for the memory of the deceased or the intention of the living, and to make appropriate incantation in time of warfare, drought, or natural disaster. Their religious function, therefore, hardly differed from that of Tendai or Shingon priests who had previously performed these very same activi-
ties.° The shoguns and warriors who patronized Eisai and his disciples were neither very knowledgeable in, nor exclusively de-
voted to, Zen, nor did they make any great effort to distinguish it clearly from existing forms of Buddhism. They may have admired Eisai’s practical character and been curious about the new knowledge he had gained in China, but they treated him and his followers as a local, more amenable branch of Tendai than the
Enni and Kujo Michiie | 41 unruly, militant enclave at Enryakuji which was so closely linked to the imperial court and the Kyoto aristocracy. ENNI AND KUJO MICHIE
Like Eisai, Enni Ben’en (Shdichi Kokushi, 1202-1280) began his monastic training.in the Miidera (Onjoji) branch of Tendai.?’ He then studied syncretic Zen with Eisai’s followers Eicho, Gydyi, and Daikatsu Rydshin. In 1235, conscious that there was nothing more to be learned from Rydshin, Enni made his way to China.
His passage was paid for by a wealthy Chinese merchant from Hakata. After visiting a number of Ch’an monasteries in the Hang-
chow region, Enni enrolled at Ching-shan, the foremost of the Five Mountains, under Ch’an master Wu-chun Shih-fan (11771249). Wu-chun was a central figure in the Yang-ch’i school which dominated Ch’an circles in the thirteenth century. By accident or
design, Enni had thus introduced himself into the mainstream of Sung dynasty Ch’an Buddhism. In nearly seven years spent in China, Enni gained a deep under-
standing of contemporary Ch’an-related Chinese culture. Before his return to Japan in 1241, he was accepted as a direct disciple by Wu-chun. In addition to the many Buddhist and Neo-Confucian texts, monastic regulations, and medical manuals Enni carried back to Japan, he also took a portrait (chinso) of Wu-chun and samples of his master’s calligraphy. Enni and Wu-chun corresponded regularly until the latter’s death. After Enni, a steady stream of Japanese monks made their way to Ching-shan to study under Wu-chun and his disciples. The Chinese master, for his part, took an active interest in the propagation of orthodox Sung Zen in Japan and played a decisive role in shaping its development.
Upon his return to Japan, Enni established, with the financial backing of the Chinese merchant who had helped him make the journey to China, a number of temples in Hakata. With these as his base, he sought to spread Zen in northern Kyushu, but his activities stirred the resentment of local Tendai supporters who, in
7 . ee “y n . i. : es jaeae a ae a aaoo ae ae oF oe “oo ' |sia a — ee e o a ee : OF ae _ a ie oe aos oe ee peal aoe a ie : aoSa.:oo | — . aahe aaeal7usaeal 'oF . ov an a|ee : 3 fo a we Foe a oo oe oo i a 2 en a ee : eoee oo lo aoooe iti es oeRet C2oe FF ”se a | ie ee ae aa ah ‘soni Pe ie oo oo . — aoe aol a oe i ee isis |.ips es ( _ = oo ieaaesca | ue eS oo me 8: oe a ei vo a ee oe sii_ “| oo a Sh a is .. oo. a ‘ eS as_ey oe ve es . @ ao a a a a _ a : .|oe ny iesi ‘iG aei a |oe age; '
ae ay oe He i Nt ih peoa a‘ll lin oo. Hhoe ee ma eo aesa Wes ‘ Hn ipeie aoemvae aolHienii‘eaee Co ae ou Ce
oy a a 1 of oe oo ae a. . ieee aaao oe ace aoe Bok ae ae ci: aeaa)aie aieVaiss 3oo) oe _civy a7aoe oc on: ah oe Mi ae oe aoe alioe yi) iLe Wid ao oyaa aoo aaav Ni he a ,yaa aae aael itae uei oo is Wee ae eu .ie meet an ee Scent oe ae aalHen ai ae aoe oo Leaety aaoe on' sii oo LF ae sii Ca Wy a ¢ Se ie Ta Mi a a oo oe . a Ae a aa "
oe one a i a‘i ae oe a i oe oe ee oo oe a. ooaey wisisisi 2] a— aea oo uloeco a -bo ceCooo ve .iaHe oe i. 8 aa i,a oo aLo Ceoe Soa seoei i.ooa 8ooa le a ae oo oF oe ee . oe 1. ce |. :aee oo Co Ln Aan oo |Co Mh a ifoo ieoo ae aa|oo i ESA ae aoF i eye aaue a aBaa . oFoe u oe tePeSEAS —aoa Tat oe_ ios oe a aa_co . RONG aeay yO ve aa)ae ae 2a oy ‘si" E Nes 4. at oe a Tan ofae a ae aaihaae.oovy i.Oo;oe iaee iaoy a .on ot a) i‘on Me 7aaoy ao , 8 ae .Oeeoe -Koeoa ue aathLe My aaaaeeeaane aey _aaonae Die :aleoe ie 7oo ae .iaiy Nes aely| oo ie ee — oo a0 ee aoo ico~~ ia oo a ea Ne oo oe ii ae ae . a es he MG eae KGa ce ak oo i aa patie a oe x Sy) a fi. vay _ae . a oe i oy aoe aN aoe a ae“a ace ok aoe ce a~~ oy oeaaeai) ‘Aeon ae oo ih oo a Aas oF oy an aieeea a a ha oh i ae one a PAHoe iee i oe oe ee bie) oo. a ee we . oe a in oo i ve — ee a ef. oe ae ee Be . ee ae ‘ a a) . a i 7ue oe a a oo. Cy Mo oo (i Haein a ie a a an at Jo Ff ae ayoe ale nee . oyae oo ee oO a ooae a Ce aa 7ia,oe on on eh iiai a ae aoo a cach 4By oo oe a-oFa aN: a ia a Ak ro oe aoy ve oe oo aoe olyy Co _oo aaooathoo oe os 3ane aae oe aanatieceaee ah mG .aaa— Wa ha a)oe ol ee aaa uNGs eyPG ae a a) hah _aaDs a, a-ns ae oe le | ae a aaea, oe es a a vi . A ae ee i tee ‘ So iH oo a Le Nae ee aae i aaiae i ace oA Re oo a c. oe7anee oo an i) Ne‘iesateKON Wh oe ayAS -. MY) 8 a Ca ak a ae oo mei a a oe a x a. via a. a a oe a a a ie, ae on ante a |. 4 oe oe oa eG . a a : i . a Ney a Le ve a a . a oy i a a a o okaaasone oe aaK aoenA ee ey Mo ae ah co & a_‘ioaii F .oo:a Pas . Ne ac aaoo. pie Ns Loa os oo. ai oe Te ie aae Zo oe oe ‘ae .aoe aHt on ae;.ce IY a- Hh aA) Md a a _. aevsaa iie a ee Oe iae ee ae ‘i ae ae aLoau on ke oF — ae ioo oy cp a ak oo: msos 2aoe ioo. oa ot oe ace .i ae oScae Wy oo ae )A iaee aOn iooaeaab oyey) aa ae nee aHa a ee ) aie oea. ae a
1 oi HH .aieoF asaaaaoo ctINR a osnl Ron salu oo oo oo meal ee _ (aoe oeaiMe 7aN aeneaSo a wy ig oo ae iia 1I oh Day i Beier ee mseeae Ce, oo.aa. Han Nal oa) Ly yon ne oeNTE any He nN ae Mh ias a a sa
*. ee
ae a | Cae a a . a . ae oo a Oe a oS bo ae Le oe ny a. a7a) oo Se oe Ae a i > / __7 — a oe a rao oe A i oo. oo :) a i o . ae . aa os : 2oF aa ee| — oe a cfoo aeoeGe uhoo i. oe Ha .oe .r— eeeoe ieaoo iaoo .eae >.ay oy ae as any ieee oo a.a oF Lo a 3Cd ol. Y re. od ae is i eo ae oe on oo . . a ae Wee ee-a. oeaee -_ r . cc . Pa re -. -& oe yt a _. .eee i . — . , a —. 3 wo oo i oo TT. oe aoe iy oo oo 7 , coe 7 a ee oe i oe . a ie. , iN 7 _ ™ a. Us i a (oe ae oe eS an ee eo oo : ae as i fos ve | . oy oF aoe _ ., oe de | ay Le oe } Oo | _ SNaAy pea ae a oe aiaation, Ca See a _DON oe om maae._7‘as ea1=°oo ya ASS - oo oe oe oo oo — . : ee oe Eo noO ‘4 by Be ie ee oo ce oe : a i Nee a oh oy es Le oe AN — | Mt _ Ae . ) . ee a. oo oe My —_ oei oe oeeeCoe aa i/inh ae a anee .oe Me a oie. a7ro oo ai We i ae aTi ae __aeCae i a)Oak i -_—aLe pee 7. a‘a ne Gg aee—— [Ch aon .aieeae ou a ie oe a ae“ ns Lo a ..a ad a Ma oy a ae aeaaa“(7eeae ioaeTS : oo |i.oiceoo of ai _ao eeanes a eksaea .ae oeone eeaBoe
.sa.oo oo . yiM oe OO ia hiaoy oe An ae oya RE , ahesi ai ei a i ae oo aaoe oy ee ae Hee a _eee. aes a oe Tee ee4Us ooayny y ea. ao .oe on ON i a a oa coe oF Ki a oe ce oo a oo on a a vo oe i oo Ha ah ae a Be ne oo ee Q & ‘| )etaeSoe . a). aLoe ee aLoe oo) ny Ooaauae as aa ae ie et iaAM vie aelae . oe_ A ee 7. a eesenea ane ay,an et aoya _aeagasa .Bn Neeeolon aeee aa aeeshe ||
aR Sie | ae ae a e
~~ oo ne a,—_> e ’1tein 13 u an eS t u >_ces n = ee e
. os aee ioo — ~~ 8i'oF D |oo Ek a1Oo |:ery . F a — ° “oo oC oe a $ n _°_.iae. mnoo oo 7 _ . ° tiPg _ a oo oo. ag u ss. a lo T 9)lef ao a . oe oo : 7 a a 1 ’ Oo gsan we . ry ht.t OOo ty -a oD P acJapehin -an Ss 3 oF a , < .I— aoo |.aiSh graph
aetecea Boe : 8 a aS seeRee MeaeHai co aoeaeee OME: ‘ aaeHen aeaae ooaeoea aeeaes a aeeaeAS — oe a un oa ie ai ages mi Oe ne LG es eeaea Be ain ISS Ma oe aa aHa on ae y of ee Au ue ee adeeeyof He
He .| \7oy oe ieaff an i: = 7 ia B a eeaaas aoy ooWe OS e ~,9 of _ e i ae .aee oo /ae.aon Sa io . oe | i_ aaaeAs ayow aaoo re8NE aaa ites aii LLacei;ou ae we oo (oes iaa)oo 8Ne a)oe
eS ae aa co eeaae aN a ae eyaAES oe aa BEEES ae oo -.. aaeon ay ce & _ ee beeyaoe oooe i.a Ben aS .eS LN in Say ee co a oF ay a... oo bad ee Byoo. a ievie a iN.a. aSou .He . oo oeAe Me aaane aLoe . Hyay, oe | oe ws. ceoo.. ype ee .hee sy ifo . a aa ice a ei ee ae WAN
ES: fs ee aeee Gy Hy aa eeamn | aMii? i8Kay oo Le oo 4ai oe ooi a|aii . oe .)..Se Soe ‘ aa a_co a ey an we 2ee. .aee——s ie >. eeitoo yh aaeeoo8a aages gjLEO nea.8aee ne oo eshe) Ie . on ee _ a Se Re ay
ee pe ee Ue Leeseeoe .Le a oeLOW oy ie aaM a LsLe ) an ee aaeHi os oe ae ihs ae eG oo we eee as oe. ee aeMe a Us a oy i eeas.aea aa oes co aBhih. De oo iiA) ef ee _ BP oeaco
See aan enSe NeHen ae .a ay BOSS ca Sa ee oeeo eeas ee)Mea oe aN aoe oe Hee an avaGieeHESS oe ———— an ae a pte ee ae ayse ooHe Aita). Ms
ES Boe _BOE ea aa icn . ne a ee esse: Win nN ee s ~- oo oeoe oeai ea oe aoeaee Neaoe Mi beue ey ne oo esaaeH oF Mi — ) aee Be ivaee Nas, ae| oe Oe oe ee Dos es . : oe of Mi We 8 Boe ae ae Le he ee a a Be ee ee ees ee oe Dee a
me
Enni and Kujo Michiie 43 1243, petitioned the court to have the new Zen temples closed down. This move was blocked at court, possibly because Enni had
by this time come to the attention of a very powerful figure in contemporary Kyoto court (kuge) society, the regent Kujd Michiie (1193-1252).
Michiie had already conceived the ambition of building in Kyoto a temple to rival the great Nara monasteries of Todaiji and Kofukuji. The new monastery was to be known as Tofukuji. Work began in 1235. Built at the very considerable cost of 138,500
kanmon, Tofukuji took more than ten years to complete and remained for centuries one of the most impressive monastic compounds in Kyoto. Although Michiie was not averse to the incorporation of the latest continental Ch’an monastic elements, there is nothing to suggest that he deliberately set out to build Tofukuji as a pure Sung-style Ch’an monastery. What he seems to have had in mind as an expression of his devotion and as a symbol of Buddhist guardianship of and association with the Japanese state
and its capital was a grandiose complex, incorporating the very
latest and finest of the Indian, Chinese, and Japanese Buddhist traditions. Thus, although the original Tofukuji had a Sung-style
Ch’an ground plan and such characteristic Zen buildings as a Dharma hall and monks’ hall, like Kenninji it also included halls for Shingon and Tendai observances.”*
In Enni, who had been trained in the Indian metaphysical niceties of the Nara Buddhist schools as well as the esoteric and scholastic doctrines of Japanese Tendai and who was accepted as a full-fledged member of the leading school of contemporary Chinese Buddhism, Kuj6 Michiie had found an ideal religious advisor
and founder-abbot for Tofukuji. Enni’s religious posture was eclectic. He accepted the Unity of the Three Creeds synthesis and lectured frequently on such texts as the Dainichikyo, one of the
three principal esoteric sutras of the Japanese Tantric schools, and on the syncretic Tsung-ching-lu (Sugyoroku) and Fo-fa taming-lu (Buppo daimeiroku), texts he had brought back from China, both of which argued the basic identity of Zen thought with scholastic and esoteric Buddhist teaching.*? Enni was also deferred to on doctrinal matters by leading prelates of other
es oo. a oeeei.££ ->oe os ao a“ oy—— *. int” a ae.one a7TESS oo oe |Bae oe ee .ce a. aiW Le melas ee= aFF A;asaaee see3 BE seES oe eeee .a7 8- |Bee a7Jee a Os >i, i ie pate gevegs aera ee Bae ee££ a|_au, . me ae enae ae aCC ee Ts ee oe oe eee eo speiainizitee |...aeiha oe
Coe a.atee . 7.ae i)oeC ne ee siogerucninat, wo ew oe eee Ceei suis 7. ae aoeaCe eea.ee Ue .,..oe LC opie ee a |Aas >.8.aION a. oeane) we a oo |poeaaa ree a Co. ue yy |) co eineAge aa aeee oroy me _Vad ae aeaoa sagguiteny coeDe oe Lo Lo ee aeo8. 3Le - 4.) ; ly7ce
bieheae Aeaaa ae aWee ae Bo ay , Pheee Gre ‘iy Cee aes OSae Pen mee a La a | _aeai iene ooBE4eeas | Ree oe
See ges ee ee gs ee ae oe -_ a Lo : a ae 7) as ae ao “ Meee
CO vind aEoeoeSHOES ae aipeen ESSae: eeyaehaeeeoeDee ooeeoemre inne eae ICNS as Oe nt AU ‘a ee Ca |ieee eesAne eee : “BeBae aa reSEEDS pie et ES Seesieee BETES: ERSiepa ee Ron CANE ae Ue sy .eeans oe ae ae aM
sa: age ae HEE Boe eeae_ pe og ge? eeRe 1ouRA a 7|Loe oeoe ‘aei eeepussies eae are es ae Sneay Tee eee pie eaebee eee eeae eeEES ae oe oe ae BN eeu Ny oe sai aAaow aOe ees Jeet Berecoaten peiey ES ae Es EE: RSS ae ee Gees Le es .oo a. .eu (Re ae 7 RUN i . Lae) _. ees
|.aon :siacea oe eae eeasPuen oo. ao ;i ue |ee aN oo. 8oe aeo pee (a we oe .ee oe oo oe Le ie epal Yoe aee oeae ~~og oe ce oe a |.ooFF .ae a. _. be aaoe esoo [oe ee« Ae. eaBaeee oe oo. aAgee oe cae aoe _Dy | Pe: ce Hagges fieyore Bi oh oy ees BE ieae haa Ha) oe eee oo : Ges a | BO .aeoo Re wl a Bice ee) 7 Aa PRB ae cae ae Oe MS © i Ia a oyv Be |eae EP oo i a ee BL ee es ok2aeoe se oo ee ee ee eeee ae Be oeee ee | Lae oF os i ae rsae Mead ei tea. ee Ne ooa. oh 3 Be HAUT ae Br ee os DN ee ROE annie a reaee: arene se ee Ses es ea ee ee eae Sus IN, EN ee io eo Cr Ta oe Ce aN a eee eee a 1) bela 2
ee ©ollie! an es eee eS Stee e ee nos ss oe NY a oo : a a | co ee aea, ug an oo 2 aoeasaeOsvl i oo Lo cae. 2. oo ae ns ee eeoe oo oa i|io.[ok a4 i . i a. oe oeeecada va of ees Es ee _ >. a | LeFe aya |yha Ue | oy a Ba Ne am Cheoo an il 2 4 aia Ge oe ee ESee ESeee oe .| . Ge Ok Lae oo. Os eeoe Oe eeneG ‘ .8otat ss — os ee i Gc oesee? ayees aeeeadpe a Cee oe eee aee ee SS oe PaleESCi Dsoo ee LE ooee ee Do .eeoyeeoe aaeeu a oe rns ig _— & a eea xasa.yeae a He )Ne eee
Loew aeGes1 ieeooLe Gsi. Ly.2oo aie ae a. a foe a -aHe : 8o ee ceeoe Se ee ie Wee Ves ee oe a.fs>.— - io .a 8 Aeoe a a oe _a‘ io aet aye aae2a.7Aeelidle he ee a. ey ae Lo ag area Co oeee SSioo eB oo |a aueaenet i. _ee aoo iDO ..so an iea 7 ee oe oo Ce ee Mo a. 8 ce a 3 — ul a aae oe i cae Ae oe a . ae a | oo i a Cae 8 7 a oo Ne oe: a oe a ( ae eee oe poe ee Bee ih oo) ay ae OS. a ie aoe Cs sO Co PN oe ne oa a Ve id a EU oT oe ee ooOe oF 7ow oe he oo— ge beMs a |oo. Fao —.. oeve 1Biol is Le oe ynee ceoe 0aMe iol oo NGG ee ‘ee es oo oo Te ae OR ye ioo | ee a) | a .ae en Ge ieSs aae et oe a oe _. rs ee Lee ee he oe ee oo ys oa oe ee i a 8 Fe ie La ey eo | Be oe .. ea | es, oe oe ee A Be a a Wis: 8 a) oe Loeetol ee ie :. .oe .>. Bae oo ia 7ceftige . ON aoeoo a“? ba. ahd gro oy :8oeco _aoeoe a“|aMe LG .aae ‘Le ‘a Pe ae ae 1ce eke |.i|_.|oo. ew aa ‘oe ae Oa. oc a ee a oe ~~. oa a oo es ee aes o.ees ou oo oe nh._ |a og2aoe es yevs ay=, . ok Dei4 ale nooo oS 2. | e _ 7 | sy eEete= iG oe. aPON a.Leeaeaeee 7. :° ..a LoeeCos ios aneue i Be |— 7. eG Mt .oy oo aaei.oe ee Loe | Me Do oe ee oe oe a. ineas ee ee. ASuaCe es oe Se Bea Aeis eaoe aia)eeaoo. ceee anee a eeeee oe es oo ge ee. |oa ueoy a Paes Ph A eveee HOSE oone eenuaus) Boe ih a 1 BG ee ; a aee oe Os ae) Coo Ce ea oO 7.aeae . AS ae are YEN in OU Ble as 20 eo HANS Seed es ees _ |. OSI ek oe oy ie bs cet Le 7 Ale Was Ne) Jee aan Cow oo ney > SR a ie ee a
as go A Li aS ee ass ati Se es ae SEES gs Pee Hoes . oe ‘ a US aga ANE a oa th Re by wpe oe Ane laa TR ini ae ne en as aa PN Bae: ee ek eeee ia: Ss.iena pee Wigces VN Leoe eeaaa “I apeau RU neCe Mie Ne, Ss,Slings aii aae eeaDe Ce: Deen ee aie. Hi ee ee i .Uh oe eee | oo aERE Cu al f ae aeesn aesDN Ya oe a) | Dg Co 6aeBa ao 7igeeNS ae ane ee es aHie oo us Lo nyaeaie. oy oa 2reksOne Hy ne aeyeaeaiioe) aFRFoe ‘oS_aeee ee Bees AE ye! oeoo a ae - CO ieee eeae ici. ay eaue ifay SHEERS ees see nga oe Sali ey Be aeond hee OSAa, ag is alee MY oe ae ms ee ge aN ae OEive | a ON % Ree es CO ia ae Lili| en nulae Hesult Ma. aaa ESae. .a gee ae Biscay a noes Me 8, IeeyBOGS SSM AeAGS Iisa TR NeeCle caeae eSEos Dae Weame
..anes aTh a.ak as, . ye=.i PY, ; |.| oe i i.ho-_ | _on 7la a7aaaoo aBi iaaa.aTo aa uy oe ay) “a ee =. ie ae oo7 oo ._ oo A ooHay ) _a et ae.ee al|eea. -a:Pas eeoo aoo oeera a|... _aoe He al Ae: ae | _. oo ena ae ee Naser iyiee) ee ae ee ee— one Ne) oeae. REN Sone Baloe AeA eat aeTne, anc i it Re aA, aage es era ahela oe Wee oe Le. aica _We oo eeee aes ea ae es aes aA m eeaBec oS eoon ae, ae ee ee oe eee oe Ha eseee aS Ries: oe Nee oo. HAY) ny ee Pe ee See aaeNe eeSN OSE ue oeaas HO Be oe iiae | ioe . ae oe ee et Ween ate ae oy anOe oeee es yen oe[A BASHA van oees CT. rss AG ae Nea ane ee Bee oe oO. ae ie of es ie .Bas aeG! .ie aNy A ae aLeeeoeony ieeeNahin aN ae
oe ae ene” Dee oe ae Me ee Oe oy |. Ales oa Rea Gan ne es eo Eeeen a Ba ce ee er es oy a fe ea i
eon oees ees A.AED _idlti Kn Ueee . aoe Lo As aeeeeae i Sa ae ON ai 8ae aS Be enn: a ae tN, aaRe ne iNo nen aee. eeSU ns ae eee Ue i Bes Te Male Beas ad ae aan a| aee esbo) cant ae teRi Re Oa mine a oe 4iSDan oaOMB ONean fM oy. eeiete age OeSie i ea _.yo >.Ls . Os hy| “ee To oie ee aNG Aos co OSae SASS 1SO ae | o oe7ohee ANS yee 0)eei
oF hotline De (ing Cy Pe oe as Me Dias 2aroea Aaaeawa, De oe a Sorts tok Le eS a| WeeAca ue ve oo apair oe Si aay Me_ pees ee Tee re ee — eeea a lisoe MeofBGS. BA ae cae og asee eeoe Pane ee ne fiioo ile Ba oea aBCBos Maio, ae Care ude neieieBa ee ee SOsae eeee TeTeas Oa oeeeefBien ae oo. oeae
ot, oy aah ae La rroe oo oe is 8oe _: — oeie«Oe ‘i oaoo ae a| : aa ooco os oo. Ssoo oe ‘ aoe a.To aeae esae — ag een NT oo oo —_ |.ae aaoe a_oe aa ay Ceasoot ic aooe onavane i hue Coye oo .— Ve|oe8 el.ee oo ey iee oeVe teole ee Ho ENS aou Ly wk Lo —— ae “ ow oeCa ; 7. akee eeieee SO oe Vas Gee) oeaal
us 3 — “oe _ i ~ . . of Lo a oo | |. 1 ye
UG ie aeee SeesaOe Die oe. oeyenyoo . eaSei. ee ew oo osFAN Os) ye aae moae ae a i Be Wee ae xik ie Mas WEbee es eee OU ne My RR TR) Ay a LAROne oN Sy: RINan) eh Sol eae aa Aa. Ny ewe oa i“.Dee oeeli eM eePG|eea-_ iM oN Nan AoF aENAa.aeee Ne Dh _ ar| eeflfeaae aedei
oly oe Las ay A) 7eo oo‘ine oe a oO oe oe |2ayea.. ee ae oe ane . aoo. oS ‘oii _. oe eo Co a ay oT prea ee a4a. oe. oe iHRB aon TF ieaoo cS oe 1reySee We cil _Ay aeaCe .eo ceas 2aai:aCe o| Lo 7ne i tfa oe Be oe ee ca i NS 7vege7Coe
ot ae A Cae re ad oe i ss ee 8 a ee ae ees a BG we . ys yy oo a. Paes oca .aaoo.a2iieieOe atiled sa eG|a. ag Ol Coo 8ia.oe _eae ao) iigaoeoeaa _ee 4) ae oy) a7.a)ieio aOR ae Ve oo. ANS co ve oa oe ong oe yooOM neeSee oi SaePee csoo ue Soy, ee. Le aae) Loan a) euaye aeG iee|ou MS IG: ie eeoo aNY Lae esaee Ree see aus aoe leSee on uae ean Dg ae) eM le nia NG 24oe HS She Oe ees eee Ni Oe ie See aa : es Os oe he Hae Py Ge Aes ee a ial Si Be a REN Poe. i A Be) Was Aves Be Di ONE ke AyoeoF oe oeoO a OD oo A Ahi) 1Goo yoa| eia_ Sa a CG ae oo aea DS oyPeLay hs ogy on oo : oe ) aoo ae esOeas ee aOtoo CoM oyAvs VE es ) aom eeoo esa| Das oe a aos he Livi As i vepee eat oe bee,|oe te a Oiaaie ig 0es cenaae a oa«ASS Se BN Ee ava) ee Jgewe at oo _ieAMigs 8 aeae .ays in ioe ca ee oe By of oo 2Nile _ee..Date ie) ce aaeinl oy ee ae “~~ 6h ae ere oeCo [_ :ceoo ieBY as ee Oe MH oe a aoo} aeee a) ..oe i. oe Sat oo as : | es ee Co ag Ma aeS Me estie ee a he oo oPoe aeees Baae . oo xSai ee us Oe DONFOR RS ae oeee aLe Pea:i.aa. cies 2Te ae .Be eeoyoes oO yi8 N) as ee Lo oo ENO ION a Ona Se . AB. oe Fa He— vate i ae b Ly oe oe .aepoe ooOEa ae | aRee arecoc ica is7oo BA 8soN NS . ao aDeiBe wie aeSOs Rane ica faa ae ifwe_Co oy e a ca oe . | iioe-imation “Bie co . _ eo oF a -—— Pe Naa ee oe wabittes i ieee Ve:_oea. han me i Csa Re ISRoe a aaeeaoF KaGune a|ee ae (aeoe i Oe pee ues a 4ayoe get a Ce a a lL 7 a oe ha , Bi) Lo. ree oer a Ol a ee i RO es rt: Ps a. Nabe ag i iaooyeSSoo soa os aeaskeZe Dt oe aieii ake ah . Aare en Lefie aN Lr Wee. Re Hive AN)ue ae Ae Ce )te7Lgoe OeGe a kas . aa Reins Hho \ Air Je, ssh SS RE Pa oe ie: os erty PS paises Pee Sina CIN AIG. a Renee RES 5 SSE We UPR a ties Me Ny EN ase entas f Nt ee BU seta a yh age BN uty Gi Sebi a Re i:
. _ i . ot a oo oe . | 7. oo oo | ge _
ae SS ee ee eee ea ae) slay a OSs Ces ee au ea oo iy oF Has cy on AS ear eG i Gils Oe ON Bes NaS (ae aN: ais ae ae ae Hea ee ESN ce Hs
iok:a.eeay ._ i|oeve 8a ne7.7. oe — . aers|| ie le)eeoo aisles .ahlo_ae.aa aCS : Bee |. oo .oe|eeow | rea: oe-So | iane 7SSLe 3acehews Lo . oe 1 ae ee oe ids Celie eei ees Os eeoo oo)ve is J Ms oe we. oe ia -— aWe 7. yy Lo oo .ae) la oe ue oT ont aeon ee enLoe ‘ive = Ia Le He aees ooa aae iG i ee oe aae asle| ee es_.a. . ae NG ayoe se ee Jee osOTR aWK oy Ae aoe ee a aas ae neiaa ye .Ns coe i Le ee oo oD i@ ae ave ae Ni 7 eG) oe oo. oS on oe os, . oe HN ... tls Coa i) io a.ee FO aay a ne oe oe Leonun OY ee Saee fOr ek ~~ iAe oe ine _oC se »ee arion oe eoeoF :reeeeys|Saar ay aeeTevec we oe oe ON—_— y . thy i of1ISia“ a) .ee‘| ns ae on 4 aaiea oeo ee 0 ee ee es qEe ai aa gen aeAis aSSey iggy nnanAay aR Sue aSO Hs ibHe eeeae —— cay ue ye ies sy eeTes oe an a ee GENES aee a Gee oy i. Nig Me aeee ae Aca oo Ty Paes i Cot ne Apes if as aas ae evening Oeae eeRay AN es Cae ee Hei in Nepy DoKi Ree ve on es We ae:cM Oy ighaaCe ee ieSES oe Ce aeieSRS Nea NR a ae TK ee Rese Bath oe aePent ae RN? ooae Laya ieray iB) aN ee ye i eatCab: oo oe aayBeieay Dae ee ieePine iy aey eace Taveo assa oe ASoeOeeecan DEEN) BN,Bee ooes i oo a Ee ce SaBee ee BN Uo:a aoe Cmay Sl ae INGA Tesoeesayee an ane er MSG pe SOG Bales aa ik i eee: SeeA ace Nias we EN LesHee es pall 4eeUeRee ee aeDe a \)Hee es oe oeHae CinSU ausaeeaoo. POT. Sa i) ee— Sole pee Pe HNfo etsees Meaea Aa ee BRE Oe A ‘ea, aeMie EE ehBee sli oeHangin) ah ae ee eeEe oe Saat i aAn ii Fe oe oe vc Sei aae. Ee a PG. ea ie ae Loe OsaAUR ae all ne (ea eeoea.vis ek fe oc.Oe Toe HAY ce I: ee ee
oe le Ae oo co oe Mg i _ 4 _. oF = = a "| : a oF
ar|eleLC tceaes: Co .f eHn ae St oF . Ww Sores Sd, ae io. aae ~acoe feoe a.a..aa| .oo esoy oe oo Te a ae : 8 SN Ce oeaoe Ms oo ae oo a) ce Bast oF aeoo A EN |es : ofaN 2Oy Ge ON ene oe . ”|.Ae on i. ae i __Ra aes oeoe .ae a.ae ce Le oe onae ooae ao aoo .ue aLh ..ce Ve ee oo i)oe ee aes >. eS _|oe aBtoo oo ve oe Oe +Le ot ub “olan Te aoe i 7..a.a oe » o ~~ 8 oe A aeLacie Tet aage og ia oe oe a eI rene Se Sn oeoe a) ace ». y=aeoo. —os| ie aa aoo Sep oe NG eeSc aeun eeaeee aeoo6alat esOe eeSaOS ooAe Os i.asi aa| . ae ae a:Bs oe. Bice ~~ eeoe oa Lee oe a oe nae ae ee ee ee |co
Loe ee es alii’ ye Be sgn eee vee Le ee nes oo | i ee ae a Co Ns fi oC . ae Bi Nas ‘ a | Ne oe .
oo oooeoy eeane LoefeoyaeaSe oy. oe cs aona ioea ae LoDa — oe oe |.ee: aa ae Ces esaebee as ae le Doo. oo Peo .oF ANS ee bea oo uw ae les —— iek Oe aGem -aeHO) — ed, aae ae ey WT a. Va pte uu |ecei—see ooaaoo“~~ .eeaaNae i&§ *aoo. a eaee Nes HES pe: _otceLo Dy rene oe ee eee aDoha ee [oe oa aaae oo Hak oeoFNe aiBN aS oo.ie ae Oe in ee aa oo é= ipi is BRR oeee JOne a oe We oo BEN ON NO aeay aoo OG, Cony ye eeoa OAS oy oo ais ae Se eee ws Oe oe aoeCe oo vn BN aaa ae K Oaaeal aNe an ae) ay See oe oe Leoroeie ue aseOm Giggs Be eeaalae! pee oeSaoeee any oeBseiNEG oe .. Wa Ses avin Ny Nines Lo reine oeRN Sy eee B aBees ee Ms teaaaao icLES fsoeon a oo as oo. See Ga ne Ma PoaNae OsWN esBia Sees up oe oa as oe Fasiasinth oe el eeee es as pee eS WEG RO) | en Rs miene NeesHTIS Rs oo ee, PGi Mea ea eemi leee aiass ieesoe
hee ee ala) out Ou ns =x_ ooceaRaNeva Roo 7es4, ee oe oe Le ce ae . eGOse ae aig po ENS liePE: a Ses VAN Rae, BeHeaeaeaGseo. ne IAseitoySS aa: BUNe ne ay SH ae ve _.eessKe ve ay oe sa oo eee es Ae NeDE Bou oe ey GRee ieaae Joy tips oo a:oy ui a i.S|.oo ska. NS yes oeCees aeileheaTeee oa sh,ak iALa By oo a Rey Eee se ee ey ey sioo oy PR e US oe i Wes Ai ae pe WeyDh A) Dane Nae bel ae a ey eeAne oe ewee aad oe ae ae ¢ aMo eeesoo aeaaLe Ny oeBi a aa eaeage ay, ayee asoyee ueeg ofEisaa valent om oo. onl on ue) i is Ve co . FF a Lo ie ee oe ae le oo is Om Be ‘i oe oi oe Oe ee oe yy) ae aM Pe eae hae So o bo hii a Ba oe one oe La Se Oe on es He oo yf ea ae Se oe os a a Mee vali ye Be es CO Sa Loy a lll ie ee ie . eS _ es oe a ie a a i a ee es eye i ‘ce 80 og a oe os i ae no a oe oe \ oo a i uo ae 8o Lo Ce Po is ae a coe ms . Cee 2 oe a. a a ‘ oy eo Ca a oe ‘i ae os : ee oo) rs a ae eT a Ce oo ae oe eo eee |G oe ae a a. Coe oe a ie .. Se Nae Rs ay ae on) Pa a in oe aee.Wee iTe Loe co _LeaeHees _asaSa):») _ue aoo aReokoeCe ao aaOSASA ‘aeyscoaa—_“ oo oe38 all ae ny ah’ _fo) Se Fo aoe Mo oa a|a HGS |Alaoe ..Ce ie ae _0 eRoe| |aae en oo Co oe oF uaoew® ON Oe Bly aUO eeLo Li e ioo — ea.NG Oy Wey Tes insoe onae aae AS Be SUS De aaR ae eee ih oe Ns i,iat _Niow ieesee ie ee aa Meee as ey ee Ac esOR oo. se Co La Roe ae Ca a| iane a1 ai‘Lo. eG BS OSM eh age oo yy ne ey He ie cia Use sales Ue? GOS: ee er i oe ee Oe i. ei NG a a a a Oy ee A Pe iy) I ae ae Ta ON wae ons Ss, ay BG Sy
Biee)ee ‘ iesaa ee LeSON ue Bee oe ia. aHAR ORE NOS eefed Gils REN at Ce Loa i ipo: ELIS ae ae ay Ok Phy: “~ e Be‘a ee ee Oye. lc Res Deanoe Ce VERN mae ES oeoe, Ry AS ee 7 pal aa ea ce bene LaeDUS Ee Hi afeeePEON ps AG: ESS AOA i Uae i: a yiOy honea eo Oe aie: dia ionic ceise oe Reems Helis HON Aa eae ae Te . Ske eins ee Gy es oe a ) Panees Cea iN Ges 1 RRS HU es IGEN asia LU: ONE Reeves in SEO ete at Fass RESA RR ses uid
Sa ys ..leueAeaage ooNG oefae Heaee SeaaaosMiataeoes a ak ee an aeean eesWee a Bae an) ee Sa ae a2 vi gs ee i . Lo See .8oo aaaSAR a SNe at sa Rs oe Beaint 7 Ce SNe Re 6Veoeee5ale AlsOo) ONS ad Pe Saitae Teee ae aeco ee oe es ogee oy a fF oeoe as eeOG eeeoe a0isNe vo |one aeay ae LeKe oe Cs ok On ed a ain . aPanik eeailRo FF Oeoo as TON a tiae Loe esa aLN aeRee) seat ae eyasie oe oe oo i aae alis7.BSan feas Peat cyWee ae ee Saae Cs auees
aiUy any Bieta oF.xaoeSES aae ares, ):aa_eeae: 0oy «asOG a.oe, oT aoy2.by ae aaOo a i . Pharg Ths i NO aa ytd See ee orce es aesRau uioea)Ly oy ee outs Ly i oo ey oe ye Fe oe oo at a“e am Oe acts . oo &£ _hsANN em uo, asLo. oe oe Ne De oy| aoe oo ee ho oe ee oe ay on as ny ea Oe oa ‘ Se 2, a We eae aU aN Ole ee |ane Ba oo Pus ae as al a po FF oe oe a . Was Ay ao ye Ns AG Oe ee neo ae ae a | « ee i oe _. ee! aa) oo ” coee sey .. vse oo oe «eG . iol 7ca7. oo 48vewh) Va Nae eea- OE | |oeoo ow: ae ae7. ae ls Oe;oo aoo oe ca ry4red E ie oF _se.SAoe ee we wr ties ceOe OS. ee a oe i.:a ee Loe |NeioN7ee a. Bl a Ws ee a)ac .EF . a a.—.. a Oe aVG ooaii uk eee ee Kah On: oo ‘ So aia ‘oo .. . aeQ a ae ae ae Ons .me 7 aaLe aS oh pi: Looog co ..ses a Loloaa ae oyoooo ely i a8BON a Ce ioOyoo : Vas eeoeaeyae
Ls ee—_— a _onaoo—RS a iS ‘ aof)oo a 7. eo @oaoeoo oe ayae a eooo , ie a oece Bo ve oe aa: oe — Co a ~~aoYLV) A oo Boi Se, ZO oa Nee ag gu oo Se BN ENS ae yA Sais Ne es NsFES oa Sao eS iepee esean ie nt oo ss a eeu) Bias NeVON Oi a TORN HSH ea)FfauGs” es HeCS 8 ae, uh ao i Vea eeoa osNie Don eGJOU es nN Tecy RON ACs (as co eeeNy eeag oe
oo a oo onaoyov aug-ae ee.8 Sea oe|aee aoe 1 aeMe ee a oe ee oe a. oe Bk oo aae oo ..HeQae a*7ee.7. a. — oo i7aa87tae Ci 8 NG 7aoo aaeaaoe oe Ve Ue ae Ce mn ..Hoe oe uO os.i)— ae ae 2s es on-an ates.aoe oe ie | asaOo 7ok 8ae ro 8 . as a 5. Faea me Ps Naa ooAine Hecoe i — | ae iG a ae A_ BOON Ras aiee a x aoa Sa oe AN Ee alae aeee Ee Lois NIN Sh ae Heae feee aval Le hee bad i ites . se Vis oe Vane ie ae ek. ay img * co . ¢«@ ae oo oe 8 oo ce oo on as . oo oeaerand ) oeoe aeae ae Ce oo.aoo8 aoo.ee oo .oe Oeaes as a. .a ae ce oe aeae Mo os La | a oeEan Oe, aie eee Cat ee a eh eG be oe ae. ae De Reoe fe aiaue Bo) I “ aoo Oe ae rd . oe ayn isMe a. ee ie Be tt¢@ aoo oe — i a.Oe ee7 i7hoe aoo oe Soe eSBae ~d oe oe oe a, 8 fy of CO. ue . oo io ssl epee | 7. a oo cg fa] 8 t\Y oaaa .. es ye a Ho oo Bs _ oe .. es Lee eee ee oc as ae NEES SUS ae Wie Ne es » a a ce OES oe ‘i ne a as ESE 2 ee Ss re oe Se ee ee A sins Ao) se Sie hee Aas Oy FNS Cee ees oe eee oo es ae es ee ae a pO Wee cok Naa Se UN: gee. ees a Net Wes eee yee as oe ce Se eee Gs teal Maiti: ies es) ae Riese wee | se NERS Balin NSE ie ae be NG ae SOT Ae SOHN eae Pa OR Be oe :
ghosd eke . cee . .aeaea ae us,omBo _ aa a Log IS a MN bas&odHien “+. 86f oe on Ves|oe oo ay a ooaa.7oe
oats | i SS >. oo oe oe . of - oo ~”
ae5aae WeBae osay aN) Ns aeane asrine . bi Davo oe Nee ibe US fi Se Ow 7We et aGe Ly A es a eu Re BS he A & Te Hic! oF ees Oy: Se Coe BES eeNae eeWeee [ONY at Lea iAlls ooaeBaty Bec ce ae Gu DG: LeNCTA vata ASS ae: PAREN ii ae) ae EON Hes es A OSee aRae: ae Se ee eo BU NS RG PO secant 5sine Wey ie uae Ooere e ee OGOR Sie oa teCon WSS Wares TSS en FeeNaa HSie i Peet
Coe aeyae Woe oe aeeoe Os Cl te oe es oe esAN Die es_oo os Oaaas hiss ii Cee aeeeeos a ee oe a} Lfee NBEO Ee A ae ee Le oe ee oo 7uh a a= Lamang ee oea ee ee PN OM - _Roa eeLe ey Ss oe TONS co Coe A aaSa asee Brae De. aeeooee | ae Hi De eee De i eS eo ain We nyoes: ae Pua ee ee ae es Mise Lae. aeoo aai, ed Boe :LO, DSa ANos Eee ee WeNN aeoe unHees ue oa i ae Ueaee it oe Lo Co an Wie Uo ae a a oe :ee a ie ee. aSe Le .. Ny OeSR ee ai ee Me Se Pal es aoe OG aeAes oe ee ee a) Wa tien a .ee oo Wi ee a, fe oe a We ee ae _. ff oF To One ey oe oa Co i eu oe a 4 = ioe ee Oe a bees ie ee oy . yf a CAN i A Ea a Be Pe 8 ve oe Lo a Ce pee pe aoo, Ne a. oo.ee ee ay ... i a Ge| He 8 a oo ae LEON | | ee wee E asf caa eetag ooWie | ;| [_ i oe oe oe | WY ~~ ws
! oeay cs ce oe i fa ok | oS Le oY Se 7 i) A, 1) ok oe rota oo | — @ 2 7 ok a a ae Lo oe eo co oo Le) a 8 ~o. ‘i 8) a oo _. y oe. - ff ae oe Le ee 7. oe ES ae fe wy
.aaea we . ee a oo eoeeae _e oe aeaoeale.es ae aoe iea7. ae oe 1.wie VK oeoe a. ist} a oo On a7 ce be a ae .7 i_ | _.. |“a Lu ae yao. fo aee oo aoe .ae ae >@ a aee wo oe oo oe oe oo. oo oe aeea oo as oe Le 2ee ee - a~8 wa ‘o) Co i a ge oo a. a i . a oe. ~ ae ee mae aie ete | |. ee a i — Co a AK oo Se ie Y = Aetipecibitiue: iy . le _ oo 8 ; & “ oo. ae oo. a Ses 2 Y hwy 8 a mn wu ae . vite eee Be. a ce a _ . Ay Ae 7 | ~ a ve oe oo oe a oe 23 oe es co > 4 . 7 a | fe _ os 7 a oF 7 ° 8 oo a.at a ae Oa oe aea. ee oo. ig a hak a an ae veO aa— ae ESa vePT | ae @ae | ya , oo4Oe)2ay. seae wD wns Sa a Dy ye ooh aN a ee ies ae ee ee Ue ee ee Es Bs oe oo as Pa) a ‘eae ee EN sia ie ASG i CUA ae Be Sola ae en BM Oe dine ai oe A Bes ae ey Tae i oe oe ao AG ie Lo . Ae Mei ee BEN. Pi oo a Se ee ae it ae IS oe ‘ ae Le SA ie Se aS a sink A e Re. Os a.esapee sesoe Loe Hit bePRN Bane EEE Ce aOSE euis eeeS en CD ieOr|Re HgCe FSS! ANeeened aeLsAN oe hi Fa uy 8 eee mt ae yo ES: Bees Ge a ne aa Bara ees2 nee ouesaLos eeoeaes PPen ae PA Mili eteSN oe ein CAG Be NNitN Aa aieeetlMade iih BeOG eae NeSe ae ieee ere ie sella ee = ooae aan eeikRees Tat Se aa eeee aeES AES Fy ae iSN ae Oa Ss Uae PeSe neeeoe aeanes Bsc Lege pee
ayeSs a, pee Lea uae RAK RL ya Seaoeawees UsasEE ey BA in oe SeMASS ER een, ae oeGina OG aeeA| Pains ay Be es ae ae ee ese ee as at ee) rs SS ee aarae oN HSSese ee He Roe.PER Oe — ANa oiLoe Pa ee LeVe aN cae Bee Uieaihsee eae 2 BN oT reil oe Sarge oe sleas pial ase veSenne Rae ieee Ee oe ee in oo es egean VeAST TRC Ua ae ay (eR Gh me ae Me:Bee SeBeg ae eee ae
. ee =
iB) a5A Sa recki ens ~~ of oe oe SAN - - a ee ae . io . e os es _ ee Py oo . ce Bee oe _ e oo oe a me se a oN ae . ye a oa ce : ee oo = oo | ~ lage as oe oe ee & oy aaoooe.iow ow el. oF aX ae co a oN se oo aeen oo aoe oe oe _ ee|. ee ee. >a a oo ee a |Be~~ 5)Y ”4)Pole gl ieee Wy oe aee aoeeeee ee a. 7La es 7)Neg eli Eis Eee ae iia— eave Ene ee see ae Te aa. ES ae| a|oei. Peee ce. Sy as AR 8 ie aooMacon: aooNR: ee oo _. Ls |;oe amtae a\oa .ealny oo Lae on ee _eMoo|ne aaeee|Vee ..aeaaes teewebe ye ae,oe aeoo) NSisiteoes eeeee ee ee PUGS Se OeleLoe co) Se oo. ee ee) es ee HES ee eeESeeaeee oyLo Ieele tn ee Lyoe Bun aeCo esaNG Bea. ae Ml i as fe eeBeNay to oe eesAi asoo. eseeBee pee aeHea..se MES: 2= oaaaN oy teeAon Ne a.t 6® Bi ee real ge pS ee ee AE: ee Es Bee eee ES ere Sone HANS is Pa Was an ES ee eo ee Sa Heese es Rs sal xa ee aes RA ona Boh! Mi Hwee a a iS ee
alag . aafoe weoe 3.ae ae .ee oF oe FES oo. —aaae aSon :"on ge: ae ote eeOe ee ee|ee eas as ee ee es .,oo _. _|,aoe oa So7bv O Ae Done 8aeea— aoo Co SES ye. ae oe e edud . ieee in ce es ae 8Cane ioe ,ee weoo oe Sae ->aee 4:78 aa|aaae aoe oe Coe ioe aoe ee ee 7,~ iaooa|ee aa aAll4aai| =oo oe oo Lo. ae os oe ©. |ie =f eee ce eeae 8aeeoy ne be a ae de a posers: oeDee ae ee Eg ah a oeaoy Bege oe ue . ee 7 Ml _ Aybv QO *oe -
oe aee eon ee Ge ES Riera SEES Se a.eoae |pee aee_ iaeBes Les aeea:oy aRe ee. aw RQ :a! eg ae2aoe ee bits /=S Co uo .eee __NG oo :F aieee8eswee oo ehve Ne aaL. ae iG Le ae aoe Os pe Be HOS he ane ee .oe Bees os ae: a ies ase ee,a ia.a fia ee SIPS tae ISH eee ie ee ae a)eg oe PUES ayee ES 8 OES Sa aa eeae si7 SU YSawd 7aon oo. 8oe oe Se Co ee ~~. ||vidoe+ee|a. oo eo oe ee Os ee ee eet ‘~~. es gf oe ea 7ai|oeame || :oS 8Oe ”Je 8 ee ae oN 0) Os aeee . eo) eee aE seeerie artes enee ETERS _oe oe Pao Le 2oe _eee | Pa ee Pes ae ae aLo |. On f be 7os : are ge onae ess Hee ee aes eee REISS ee, ete | a oN ee SeeBe pee HSE Sas ee coe Ree! ao a ie Cans Seos AS— ee ae eae ~~ ao.-8. oe pe Es are oe aes are oo ee os a . ee ao ey wae oe ee ee AREY OEE pees He a Bas HEE g Bae oe 2 | a oe ee pees a a EES! og eine Be Ree 8 ee ie _ De ae ee gy om oS Sm FSIS 3 Berens Ree oe eae: ae Rieiags ere BEES ee fae Wh SISA EERE CSS Han SFE eee ee By Ce eee ere Spgs o oe ON Bae se oa ee Bas SNe : wel: ia;ae6LW: Ve oe oo eee bora Ae _es ae es.._:aa:PES :@ Oe ase oe co ee Le aa Ae tee Pes :eee Soiree Pies .a.._aeee eee ae es a. aeaa2 a uM oe |AaeeyeCaLa _iee2Le aBPS ey ges es ee ._Gs aPERERA oe ; ; ng : ; ee ee es Ese HyeHeE ZEAL Apidos ERR | Ss F. SES ES op ae oe aece Oe Oi ice Oa :Eee asas ey ae Py oy ARON eeee Se ee ye ee ue !fae een Bee Oe ome eee he abee ASE amie Pag £0 HES a HESS Bay reee ;a— oo fepoe oo :HESS ey pets fat ‘ee oe|... es . : :.be.: Pot es alah en os, ee eee Papeivies ESS eee LAE oe esee ennai ut) NG: Dae: iba CEES rete ace CAPES eee es Be enna rene are aaFee ae — co ie .Re a.BO yee oe oe moked Hee oe coe ees By Se cl Lay ae ge oe MEEES HERES oe ee|5aS|a Ft ee eee ame a Te ree Bh poids perp Bor H Ash : eae Bue ee eaISS Ae areBee EE Satan ipeice ANB ee Hees ees SEES Pe apopu jaa! oe. MN aBeane eepee Be ONE ey 2oes eeSe EEE SE gemare oe le eae eeSUES LOS ae )wa ay te oe HERDS eres EE BOTS es :so ieeoe Gs eon ies ‘vt Se me ae aes jee uw We: aee ai WAIN fe SRN See APES nh fees:ERY aBN aaOe Ee Eeae BOS EE eSeon Beans BoP MeeaBe ieOrs eas ‘ ee eae Bipenae
f L, ae a 8 oe
| em | Be Beas lige iid aUEAG ao ‘ oy78 oe a Me ey ees Nisoad eg SRE SIRES Agi i byaoMa ae
Enni and Kujo Michiie 45 Buddhist sects. Many of the monks who enrolled in the monks’ hall of Tofukuji had a Tendai or Shingon background and combined their textual or esoteric studies with the practice of Zen. Thus, the Shoichi school, centering on Tofukuji and its many sub-
temples, preserved a strong eclectic bent throughout the middle ages.
In spite of his eclecticism, however, there is no doubt that Enni thought of Tofukuji as a Zen monastery and of himself as a Zen monk who had inherited, and would establish in Japan, the Ch’an teachings of Wu-chun Shih-fan: ‘With the practice of seated meditation (zazen) as the core... [we] should be faithful to the teachings of the Master of Ching-shan.””° In his Jushu yodoki (Essentials of the Way of the ten sects), Enni adds to the eight traditional Japanese Buddhist sects two new ones—Pure Land and Zen. Although he
outlines the essentials of all ten sects, his exposition of Zen takes
up one third of the whole and is clearly the centerpiece of the work.*' Moreover, although Tendai and Shingon buildings were in regular use at Tofukuji for the first half-century of its history, and
Enni himself taught esoteric rites and practices to his disciples, the monastery was organized as a Zen monastery under Zen regulations, with Zen ceremonial, Zen bureaucratic structure, and the four daily sessions of zazen mandatory in Sung Ch’an monasteries. Whereas Eisai had hardly been more than a tolerated intruder in Kyoto, and Nonin and Dogen were both forced to withdraw from
the city, Enni, from the first, was welcomed into the Buddhist elite in the capital. This easy acceptance was due in part to his formidable learning, to his long experience in China and direct association with the major school of contemporary Chinese Buddhism, and to his tolerant attitude towards other Japanese sects. The most important reason for Enni’s success, however, was his good fortune in finding a secular patron who exercised unrivaled influence, not only with the Kyoto court and aristocracy, but also over the Buddhist establishments in Kyoto and Nara. Among Kujo Michiie’s progeny were abbots of such powerful non-Zen monasteries as Enryakuji, Onjoji, Toji, Ninnaji, Shogo’in, Todaiji, and Kofukuji.*? With Michiie’s patronage, Enni was thus guaranteed
aoT .s. :oonee _apa: oo.“aae|Loae.ee_aecea:oooeBeSe ae ge eeesaa. yi asie : . =— Ce setts ‘ftee me aa oe ae ae oo CeSe ; . Py Fe aaa . oo 7 a ee oe. ae Gs oe oe ae ee ae Be eae oe ens
parieacs antis Beceate ra CO i OES ae if ee? Dre: Bee Pesekase ‘i a 7 i / 7 - :
sw oe oo a oo Lo oo ve ae ae a a ee os 4 oe weg —e(uti ae aee ae oe Ss ee Ff aL es Rane 1 FF a .ea a aOe geaeee a oo ff Se eee ff suse
tee -ee.coceoreye _Cee . Vee IEEE ee oS _oe .eeoe ;a|oe f.. a |. 8 ee ee oo . a Cf | tL e« abi. oN Ls a.ome | ae ee ee =[| Hes eeoo. oe i.ia. oeoe eeee |_ _ 3 8 oh es |. | af oe {|._ | [. . a oo oe oo eS ee 2 eB oo ae Eli # / ee i Hs _ * —.. ee oe eeSe Deke aSa: ae_ Yef ile Ba eeeoag ose ayLSi Co . Ce eeeeeae : q | . Co Nis -oy | = oe Mes| ee ESS a uy ce ee a . |eeoe geeae Bee eget SESE | - ot. oo pe aue ae i me ee ee ee or . . ce ees ee een Le a _ oe eS pee a ee ae iG . ssasaivte
ee) all 7 Nee oSWe Hote oe esDe a ene oer Cee oe aon aeseS See ee see oo. ee anes aia:eee PES te i: hk { i _oss j a cos | : ao re eee Paesaaeeory eeGiven ees eeeeNRE pieseeueWey SS eee ae EUR Theeee ea-_eeeeeeeS Lee eee: wos es ee
q| iyisa |3: ‘3wi 2.|Lo| | |cei.Be a) ae 2 FESS wel ee oy nit... | oo eee ae aoe Sees oe Cl keauy ee ay oy ne eSee ee Bune ae eeeeee PL PES Lo et asl) oy ae aes meSte iseoo. oeilong ia a igi AS | ee ees jq : es 7 a ae ea oe eee ao Ace arit ee Wa vs cM NG gh leat a: pa eeaes 7. eeS. ee oeEOS aaa ERS os ee UEOss eet EEISg ee ae eee oo oo i Te Dawe HA aeone |. a Nee oo aeeeoSSES oe ee ee aCe oats ff ne cian ; : | Ls ::; aR _aeBN | ae Be oo i ae See2 ae oe.pate ae oa Heaitaes Oh ane oeaeea ss a ee Ceane a esaeaeeeeeefeei |.ee- HE
'& ia | ae cay Oe ge pee ae a oe oe oe a. Ee ee
aea| |ee el my) in | aieoe eeHe ee ae feeeee poe Wseeee PeOO gtdbine. ie AHal oo eee ea bin i oeanaNi i ey ee eG peeee. ee eeeees ee Be CS detees ee . ahs, Ceie. [| aesoo. Bae ot ioe Hy aaejae autana ig me Ieee oe ee ee ess Ses ace een ES re Penge | - ie : if | ’ |. ) sae i. a ay ial Nie Lee i ee ee ater A’ oo Miah PNY aay al oan ase Me Nee Na Mca Vib oe ee ele oS ee SS OE? 2 epantees i;
to ier |)i 2Lo. rkoC oktiesee Ba _A Me..ae eo oo eseg (eae o_o. oe 7.veieay veee Bae ee oePanesee ese oefae Pere eeLES eeee ES ee Li Keeesae eea SSS 28 oree oe aefright aad “Pee|. PERE Sees ee eee | | : : | )| . |eee & : . ‘ Gy : . a EES fragsee nies Hea ia fs y iG EES pi om es en HeleHY ‘i Naeaaahif ne a. ii a wh sicle aye iaae SEESee
|7acoeae eOoo 4ayafeeaaoe|aoos : 7a|aee ee aleHie Lye o) _aOy 4a2 oo. i eee ae acom oo oy ee ee‘~ ee oo oe Laan .Bi on Se eet A aaa es aa Bis ene ee ay ahs Oe a4 | ee apeheuy aiig a|Mig i)aeHel oo ae SS aye . Daal ee aooae ie |ueeeore we :_ a7ES SON ee eT ee a ey oo Waa enee eenaA ree ae ee Da he aeae Oe Ci ag ene iG aaaeg. EE: oe aeaia oo aaoe. oe Wes a ain anRoane i‘isa on ce eee aa ag aVid ae ek oy .=|_. aon oe kal ee SOS [ee aee1oo a“ ms ye i9Se in aceCDN aaoo bi oe a ve “2 eavo :. oC of Ges: |EEE ee oe7iLe aa_aeoF oo oe Oh eg cy cee 1|7||/:‘Y Hal}: i & rye 4 ee oe a ue oe be) a . 1 . Ce oo co ' ~~ Oa: . 4 hl sl ie — oo oe a a a oe Le _ Cc . oe fo io | i) hi izeleMe 1eau|iheeaC | eee a ee oo oe i ;52>“a ;| a|oe: vo _&ak He recsa aBoe ceoeoeos ae ae _ Gy 0oo a seoe : a_ oe a ooae eee_eae 2oe a ae a . ss SeS: .a=5:| =Zs J; :Z: ::: | ve nyon me eos Wise ae a us tay ee ee — oy as oa a ee ae oo oe ie el i. ih oo Be oe ees ae ee Le eee ee ae yee Ce ee cgay
ae oo. ao On aWee Aencon ny Oe ae 7a oe i} eo ae ae es aa)LON UG oe — ie Le Ng oeosceBeaeeeesoeee‘ue KsRoe Co 8esEE ; ;iaae a.3aoo co ee OR : ooesAll oeROS oe iane oo ee ieaeae Os.ee eee a| ee on ee ifHoo ho:ae are eepee iyee i :La oo. oi ;Iie4 aoe aeaa el oo aCe ia [4 oct Le es oe a!ee oo 8Zo ly aeco Te oe EES BOE EEE ge .ah i aoe ae .Ae a ae a ne cooo ooaiLae if vedoe ae Oe ee Hee ee ee oe mi 7: . | :ey : a:2S jSe , :* a.woe oy ee Csaes Osoi ee oe . Coe Le a sy :. aa oe)ae ae Lhe
Wy22 aee 7.ceoo oe bi . ale : eee | Es : -. :oo : : :oF cee we ae ooae (ye ee EES oe ooo aiaae oo oo _a..ae afr ee oegee ee eeaees =:_7:i:heane [oe _aoe oeae oe Be os oe aHERES) ee ne aa :|-_. os ai7ol| >, egg .a ee oe fone oeae Bee a Pu
7ay|oea2aoeCeaoooo.:meae 4oeaeee2.aeaeooeeee:aie )eeiaoe_«4 |aayaoooe iaeeeaeaYe ae oo. ae oe ae ee fo | oo | ot oy okoe Dee yas . oo A eas ee Rie Ae i.Coe te oo Soeoe eeoo Se eeee ee fe ee ee oe ee aee aaeoe ae oo oo a2 aoe on _— - oe oe :oeoe oe ee:Ai es ee ae HG 4ae oe a. eae oe oe Cone ey oe oo ee ee ee ee aeceae ee ae ooaa. 2ae ) Mn Oe Oe “a. mn Se: : aHS oH oe iae i ae— .. a ae ee fe eebee ee7 Ee, pee LORE aes eas. ou oo oo an a a . : 1 \\ | ee a oe ae ok i ee | 4 ae ae‘i7oe aa ses|aa: iS ee oo 7. yoo ee.ae ae oe aHe i.ae oo: ag oo oe oeae ee ee es aa.oe eea Ds ESS Wee cae De 5 a oy oe) oo ve i. eS : ay 7 oS ce Sees oo a 7 . : 4 : : ES oe S oo oe oe es a a oo i hee oo ae ae Ne Pp oo oe _ } 7 oo. a ‘ aOe a oF ie ae Psae ee Soe aoo aane8asaNyae _.OeCooioea.es aN yeoei ooeeoe es \ eees a. He- SDN:ZesZae a. a)- :a _: .\\.q |:4 27| 4. :2_a— oe ne ee | aLee pa co Lo Lo Ee aAeriHee es : | ee - wl ayBae HA a Bta UEaaN : ee ae ae ee aS oe FESSoO a. ooee i oe ps . ee Sees oe en ee eee gis es Sa! a| a ee: Hee nee iNs;|oea|\oeoeyo44oe ye pee aBae oo y, 4nee8aene qMe \eea ‘ -sd aHa ve; ee mh egMOSS ce es BE oe ipe Heee gea ae oe. Hee oe Ne asaS oo ESLe ee HER ae oeoe pe Beéae ee OM at ae ae aue ee a. oeie eeee cee se eGeee Hane aeee SUSE eeeae ,ve: ae ADON SBOs) _ie 7a ‘ioo Ley ee a.ee.oo ae nM . ae es oe eePa Rees: SE Mee
Ba ,‘N — a. dem aaeeeeee oo i) Or URS pee aeAae Ba Si — ee ae eee oe % as oe ee . 3ae oo oo ae aeoe aeete Bes cee ee ae eae ae ee aBee eeAe ay 8eSee see ee “ .as& i.coeae ii 7. agpoe oo oe HEE ASG ae :ie Ae) Wa as aae yoe fee oo oo PS ee a esape .Pe oe aE ee Oe ae ip7 ae a, aonPa aisae oeaAns a oe is a Wee _ee \ oy asey Ds ee I a oya BES Sea care eae ee peee oeoe Rae Co ie aee ae _ esee ea ee pare ens a ae NA ee ne 2 oe eeeter HE as SE ‘S: ae oa aooa a oe a SES a4 Hes AN coe eeooSe sf io. ooethae —NeSee Heee BEES AsAeaoe pes Be Baeae ae ae a| % |Ce oe ee Oe ar eG oe oe ee aok eee eWee aeeee eee mS oo oF a7. uh) oo. "Os PsRee an a Nis eses CeSoe me. ee ee _ Beoe ee ae oe ae Bee Hs 2oo Pare rEgaa ee oe: ;.Da|.: |on as a.SaWa \Mie ee Oe aNe oe es ey-BE se soe a yee ae _ 2ee oe aeWe eeeeLee aeee7Hee ce oe 7eteee Bee }HE |oo | FF ey deot ay|.oe % Pe Be ye LD eeoe |eal oS es Be EE ee) pee HEN EEES He‘ ; ‘ ae : ‘ aoo : aeea onoo He)oe ae Oe LOCe a Leesa Me 8 eeoa oo ee ee hae . eeoe Looe a Ls _ Boe BS oe eS oe, eg _ ee Dae Eas. ay Beteoe Oe ceeaeeeeS,celheesE ee al es eeeeeee
ae aD a a @ — wr oo pss oe 2 . ee Co es ee ee Aes HE
oo a.a i 7. Ki Lo We cous Nae Coe co neg Oe aeOS ogae ISoo > yoo.ae L. 2. Z:oo j s38 aoo. |Bae .a oeke ve oe aM) oy aeeoe Ga ee “aN |. SN | aee7) Le oo 7ieeeneeG pee ae neae oy oy a oo aWES yy ae ve Ra ee Co OG aeRa He oc Coe 2,| y:!aie: ||:iii |:3nn :| :3)ee y) ae Psa oe )Ok a iaN ey 4NG) es us Ss.os ela |Shee elis fi a _ae a on) ae We. SON Pe tN, a ve oFaS a a.AN Hae oo i Me a oo ohHO) ee Ue,aoe pe ee Coe es oS:a); ee Hee
oF a‘ aeo >eei~oF y . ia0 Oe a oo oo ..a a.ns>X UN)on aee asae— |ioo2 7:ee ;7.3-Way aoeesi oo tes 7.B| |oF ss i oe .ee. _aRNG ORww ae a .vee..Baus . OE ace B oe peeme ag iea oF. i oo Rs Oa) ey Se. oeaea esa We Loa — a“a oh oea cee oaooge
.Be aa a|oo oe co ae Ae HON os eeES en aceeeHes aooaeeUR esIsaeoeStae ay aN 2. aeseee ee Ses Lo oe oe By i' )eeee : “. ..ae ae co .cae BTR NEG BONN DePe ae RG DANG Foe Wee oe EES aaAS oe eee eecee Pus ee se eee eesy See Ea Bree es He aa‘ oe ce i— aOo aNGHes yeaeRN os SECU ANY RUE) ipatta ce oe HS es aNee SE) . aMs: - MG Z GPS | |:islHh , Hi a.is) i as ons Ne ON AyANON Se py ee Ws eea ee HS Cy Ova Tae ey oeon ee Hage Bee ee apSEN a5 oe We iALo aK LEN NAN GE ca oo.See ig . o8 ae aae Oe oo. ieom eaa ._Alig — j PNs 4Bees ©aus oo .usLe iss os ie oo 8 He |aaeRO ee .oeLae Os es i,Aa ae .iaee arene Ae Via age a iG .Aae oe oo ooUe . Lo oy : Eee ae oooe ee oe a fe ee os ee eS ee ae oo Ne ‘es.coe ey .eeaaaoe :eeDNs | ,AM , ;.7 : .2Pe a Ve ooaaaBa oy a Co OS Oea‘aoo aAe aPO a2 eeeeAG co _aiaiHae a ae oeaeeeCo ae oS oe aox iy -eeMoe Me
$Le “ a ia a_. a A. ye oN a SSoo on aer i. a oo a P aa7 a.aeon ae a4aejUe Gg ; xa : ,7 {a ee2a / ue: oy 2aa a mea —Co oa aoo Le aa a OG iee a. oo ee. eae | 1 }oO 4f éo. eo .,aae.So i aa|.a aQZ ..oo aaeCo 3_| oo 3Z4s Ue oa4Ss2j:oe iaae oo 4ce @ Ss a 'aoy coe - aa .C NEN a\22 i_aoC ia ce oe Le — aay . ee 4Le 1.aie E1] ige aee ioO a.3 ale oe oo 0aoN a. aeaoo |aoo. ia 0ae .CS) ae Bld RG L i,ja|J;| es f,|;;:‘‘f|pS 7oo |a7. ea oe .Co -aak .|oD Ba eee Migs Be 4¢|
co OM oF i.RAY Hey aeeoFe Ge ie |ae oo oO oo .Oy oO oo aae- 7— oe a: ,co |as a ON en oe ON DRG. oo .Deny osCn eae a.aoe Loh est oo ae asee ee ooaeaaos aecoLs oo a“ Ae aos ae oe Te BS LooF Sue TB DUNS TOa aae ahe ih OM Nowe ee ee 2oo Bee dee: oe ieee ‘ .L“— ey My ) oo oe ne ve on,ee NG 1) ee ey Me on ne a.ae .i)co) Boe) ue me a.iaue 0eea|.Bee: bs Ai ‘a|Ny }Be ae gn ee ae oOR MM aea oN aes i Lo OG Aan Cee By oe oe CU RGRe Se ooo. Cone oe , “aieey a Ea 3ah Aae !; .ae ) |é ae _. oe __Aao 5. ee oa.ava ue as Ne aaiHoe FO aeaGo. Ee a a aRAY NGaeae Re OD |.Lok oe ey Lo pe oe 7ils ve Oe a _ataCe eS oN Fees a * US oo i:aOW ois.UN oo oy a SS oe ae @ aSak AN CEN yOA aeco ASa.iat PU .aAoN a Oy 7 yaee co a “ gae Aalie | Loeve . |ae ! ,!eey / : ? | : , — ; | | ae rs oe ne POS he NA UES SR Ni MG ye ves a Me SN a. ise ON Ds J Me >. oe ae us ah ie ays Oe ee Ma 8 of oe ae oh ieee ae a [aa ea Tap Eee Se
| ’% :ne , ..:UK :oe. |Osay -oe . .CON a sk Dy, eiAeoo co ho ate esnyoe a iee oe aAe ef| .ee Aa oo SO San AGsh ey a at a, oe a a ok | . .y|ae 77 He a on ‘inea . yf seaPees _—3.|‘.)On |ae De aaR Oy) Co ce aaiiay aoF oe Ce oo .cein ~aie A ::7, fae oo Ve oy ae aqoe |:7xRea oe o.Loe oy oe oooWi .we .‘ii ae ca, aoo ue aAY «Lecooo xai Ne _7ue Fe E ))>A;}> co a aoF er a aWy eg oSe ee4yy ae aeel eeOne ee,a1S a ase oe—oeoF 8a o aaa.a oo eeae . .co oe Boe ee ypoN oe as vane) oo iS oy Os on Me a ae ey . _ : 7 q d 2 :ssaoo. .Ey)oe ce . oF co Co : BueoF ae :oN ACiaSea|Nea>A8eo 3ais AN— 4, ee ee oe ae:‘i oe Ras 2aeq AS anya Wioe Keay i) oe ee AY, yee oe __ Oy at AN a re Hee one Ne SN oe a ve a a_ Hh a) _ : :a Jae : : | éco «.seoF ;4 e co ne Bee, Hee, a agy eo Ue Me oe oo oe es CON ee a i.>, -oC Wh | |/‘le:| : 8oeoy .i A a we au uy Me a a ae a) a a oy ie a ree ee Ce oe a ve ee uh oe OR ay, oF oe a Soe ae i . ae sit a \, : e 7 iy g ; A oe she 7 Wet Le NR a. oo . Ne a uy eae a a Se) . a) ees a a oo — oF ee : fe POs IBS ess co ie GN oo Hes oy |. a AN as He Sus . Tn NY RO Ce a os 1G CRE Uy LN ay One oo oo > cs b j : , | )
Wey 1.; Ke || oe OU oe nd ue Os ae oe eo. es ho oh Ce aS ae ae a ae a DER a OO an ne Ca CNG eae . ae a aM iit oe a an Oe De ee a 4 | .. : ci Co oe oo an oF ee Ce oo oe a 0 Ve ae a a ou a ce ae a) ae ae we ae y a _ | _ y ES a 4 l bag Be Oe He ay ee BND Cee Oe Pas Fe OS Sy a Bos oe STH nde NS Bos eon oy Ae ae LON . ae Hae uy ae as a One Aa ia Le co nee es la my ae Oe ea aS ae ae oo
oe ae Oe a Don «feOaa oe DoeooalWe on aaseSya7. a. aa,a oo-a/aaey, ~~ a;Ze: Z;% :|NeRSan|oy) |aShPGoe fox oo .eeaeey_oo peal a:0eeaoe aOR Oe ae oa EG ie .a oo oo -|oy “aaaa,aeSo||. a :y |£yoe )i)(f Oe aAas en ae: RG aeoe aeeeOG ae ca_ ..oo GN Oe acyiHe | g"| ":°“. BeLe eae oe Oe TeHOGS BNE ON, ys ae Be AO Ay fe .co “ay .Ls ae |Hi. oo a | aaa oo 2 Ay us oo a a oO _ a ae oo ua FF . a ae: 4 ae OyaeaOeLoOGolAGN) i. ooaoe oe ye a oe oF. .ai :We a (iigg | : Lee: z ay Al i a Se A a NG NER We DON 8 OG) Fey an Ni sae a Se OH a x ae ao i Oe Oi ee Gy es vais oe . “ee oo SON aN BAG ae oe We . ig 4 2 i ‘ :
7aN oo oo i— a x ae We ey is as FNoo eae a oe y a 7 ‘).a |ae ; | : : ,ms 4 Z | : 3a ‘ : : v j 4 lg co a _ if a . _. | ; | ( @ « a of oy oo ee co Ff y ha a . a|.i] 2 ‘ ( o ao i . sf a a 8 oe a Le :| :oo| ,\f : : : | ie 7S | | a: Pe e a i . oe AY c. . Hy a . . oe Roce . oe ve a | Le s : Z ie (oFaoo oe a| oe oe ’ aoo :. || :: : ::, ftj “a|. ._. aFe a iaeave_ a| one ne oo 7 LN a|p if.a.i aco a oo a ae oeea.. .a._ ..oo \ 7. ame i Lo NG Gi le Se ai oO ae US Se oo . wy of a ai 2oo .ooaAooisoy > .“yy y /| |fiA>a :OR a ne aeNee ey uk SyLy .. aa ig _oo. POU iy ae AR HNee enaeaeaei aoat coe oo. ne) oo nna oe oa meani iy) ae a es aeae a ee geaLo a ap AaaAY ty aPe7 es a) CaS) oo.eee - i .a/ ae : 4 Moe - : ; : :/ | : Z
| i . oD oe yo co a ao . a oo. ae Lo o oo i co) a Vo oo. . < . . | . 5 4 J 7 5 : sf
| :Ae ‘ |ee| Lo 2a Ny sfoy . : 7oo auyOo ae oe OS ahco GaN RAN Ae ee a8a aSue oaaaa |Wy a, A ut 4rJaqEean ss. : :. 1ae: 2BY va ce 0, _.Aes . oo a .RaaaVe— Oo ai .2ce zs oo DN OUue Re oe) oy oe oe oo AS) Ly 8 oo a a fen a —Z Zaq
!aHex| Coon | oo : aa:Oy |agcy -VK ybRaMaen oe ue oo Bae ff IeoCoo vay oo iN ae HES oeNis ee ee ee i Sa i oa Ceooof aa LP wy aa. ee es Ne od le ae aVaSM .oo . ahe Zag Z | on Z |W :ue e)a1i| i-| eloe veen i ONES ee Se. Re aa eee ooya eeta ne s)ie.aany ooaBe Ce aony a wh Y eh oeds ay aXS GeaoANY A oy eene oovat NN ae veoy iHeOa aesaeso —7a -aDeh oa oe 1 PRS ae VeUe ‘ ae ny oy aae eth NEE ay esee ee BD Ckae a Ce « ae aN a) ae ee ee oeoe f Ce es Des ~: ane oe aooBk Me 1ee iTN oe7oe oo. | ai .“ig VY|. PS | > of ia =& om) 32 ' wm 5) Uv | oD oO 3 ao + * % * * o 8 2 2CO UN |e1O cs ics Pm a ae Oo, 3 wv WD bx Lo) an?) as) — So ra 3c Oo ++ 7 Be. i wt Ay x, ret % So n Cou | sy > = . ) = ‘B § = -2» 3. 3 op 5) oN ES2 SBD Y px) aa onl=©:*3ba2 ao cB) Oo N.S eo |So % OY opi 6tO x x *|geo §& 8S Oo 8 oa. 'S a OF Bes fs a2528Oo i) *S oe 6 £ » le) oc ay S Ban | s | cet 23 loe ~Ble le le Sez | 3 ee a OB LR Bot 34 82 110 Articulation of the Gozan System
oO) aed * e om ‘=. e . CO s 4 SER RID) EP Ba ls bo Ee Sa 7) i | oO “4 ies | 3 45 O 5 c Sllio a wy |G & x | 9 Yie fF) 8 s/lO1in|S 6 £9s nd
~ etEe]. ort |Bs enaE*a 583 8 “= 3.8 iamm |wPisa Ss| soy a ee SG /]| id | |&eecm Db “4 V9 O SaeljwMeclisf && =§ ‘e) on Cie vols YVItIgsjoe! 19 116 a ON Say
- 00 “eg ioe SpE tH OER thie a cw 9aBR, wale fc|jM [mo ES i3oos 8 ioip 36Aes - 2 ws on mM wzZlge|/S S . “edSS phn OO on 4 poem orf S Olo Pers eee =, “= &R° =vy Oo“ ¢dn 2| sey 19 =i Sh c| oot a ow es YM 2wo
=ee* 5 mya68/2¢8/14 8 Soi 5] & oa|8ay a 48 = O5>‘BS OM | 9 3 MZlgeloy |M [es 2 ogee 50 2gs =
ee cTO jan2o|"cqOl 3 oo «= &idOi .=°WE @ coc +} a ue es AE As N | a) oe oPmo laac3s) Sc oD > ry 2 & eg aom0srSek | 0| Me o oS f= w oMae
oO oO Epa gis 60 5 SS Sa SE aU~ > =ioS 8 wMevuusiosx §) 282825
> 8 So S 2 a Far N 6 te | x | > -
=oN4 Qn
ee
has ©. S. Ss 8
BR oN
Ze -O \e) oO S) ‘S ,=oD a La w
Sl “| «i «| x a | dd | dd | | Odd | Oe
Bae] Rl |x RI be be || bd be || eT SmO5| bd]| KE Sd ||
we Ww _ RN a 3 | iD) ws w 3 3= IQs | > | | x n 6 ea §| & Ss v) IN ie) aadSm|=ZioBT“~ — 2 5 Ql xl we] sd iw |SNS] 8a81 X11 X -. e PS] 2 © AQ ~< re ~*~> 4 ™ 3- | Be : fle] F 2 |3 | 833
“S| xX bd | dc |* be | Bd
2_ © S
Svs set oe | || dS OK || OM a, BaF a |deS|| dt £3| de
| ag} 2 2 “J a o} 8 2 "Bb 3 % | S| vl Ore] 6] 4 2 of | a yo Ll es ae Oe ue fe be : a ae re pee te. ee a pee a ee eee es oo APUG s a 8 ie ae. " eceonien damien eacebear a es5.Ms oe88a \~¥) a eae PEGE eis Sa aes: “EE see feeeeeee eee ENE ee &ey ee er ee oe ee aes ae 7 | aye . ee Ve ae is eee a Os 2 ae eee EE EE oe ee ae ae oe
O oe ee _a oe | etblot ee ee a oF. *=a.onSs 8 welLPeo Se § _ ee ee ee pene ee i Ss a Fee a a $s Ss bw 3) i 7 2 | oo 8 eae Ue a ta eere RENE B OIE AE 2 Le MSS Wiese e
. ese iinee..eeeea a.Cl8 er ~J) Ww ~” ~” 8 i._. |se Fe rery) as LD Rs oner ee Repti Seer eeeDAE LPsSUES ee eeSEE ee ee ee ee PING es oom ee Scien ee Sigil ae ee 8 iY} te MieRee oe cocae ieawningeiieel iene eee BER oe EMS e Be Bate
SoBe: AEES Bsareee Peepasar mee ae Cone ee eeeeEASE eeeEe oe SOS Cea ee ! Y s fs Pe mene aBe UPR aGRR ae SRE IAT Rra TR IUns paresis eee SSEees PMI MESS et aeaae gi a ae f q) ee sieoeeign’ bieesee ee Ps eePer Breen CO eeaeee DlEU b~d : ais eee HOR gr L EAC priatoee as pe ee aae ceeeee Roeee Een HeBene ES EEE . bn 4) ES igs |aeeeneee er fA ae ee7ana i ae ee eee OE ae: LNG: eseeES Pope aq ee i .oe» ee. ed ad° Ee | eg ee eee i ee ae ee — a ee ee ee Shee OE: er ee eee Penne eae ee 8 es Bee | oc Ue Cee Ne ges ee a: ow ® ee LL COSTES A, ee eee NEEL SP: as ae Ls Rss oe Es Oe ~~ bed EES I ee a Sees ioe ee io es re LLL ESS Es oe oo of ca 3 89 y> Ss Se ee eer oes ee eee CERI SMM oes fee fe ee oe es re oles eee ee BEES TEARS ESS Ce ‘ He rsDS BN ic errSSUE POS ES ee Aiineigii NS ae eee eee) ee IS ene Cee EaSea eee ee oe cea oe epee be HGS PE, #80: ee he ee“ Beeuct ae EEE ee ROSIE ASGgS Os(EEE eee |eS Cena a eae reese geeates See: es GI HEE BEE Be areeeeae aa ae oo Ee eri eeseSANAC PS ess es ees OES bee ee ee ee USES as pee ee aa— oo ES HOHE i ae ee ee oo Gee ee eee ee z a ey ee ee a ve Pad: ® Crd ee ee He Se eG i. Ss Eee ee 2 ee OE Ee eS eee ee x or 4 Sue bw . - * a ee i oe ee i Lee, esBei ee a. es Fe ol CE ne ;. aOe ~ “= 8 BOLE os 5 ae ee Ge (PSees ee eee ee ee
lraoe hleae ee. ee ee 2 . =. 89 =
EO oeHES eee es Neeeeeeeeee oron ee ioe US Ree adee ee eee eeeee ee eee ee eea as as ee 8 a 4=C oe wu 4% ees Ge EOS SELES SSE Sige CSP Ase rie Bah oe SE RES ESN Pa ese eee PO Rea ee aay er ae ee en PES os ae oe es bs y < >| ‘3
Transmission of the Ground Plan 177 of the various halls; together with schematic diagrams of
| the various bell and drum signals used to set the pace of monastery life. (7) Sample documentary and calligraphic forms: for the reading
of the Ten Buddha Names during the circumambulation ceremonies; and for the wooden tablets assigning officers and monks to their places during ceremonies.
This is far from being a complete inventory of the contents of the Daijoji Gozan jissatsu zu.* Sufficient has been given, however, to indicate that the diagrams and illustrations cover the most characteristic features of Ch’an monastic life. The illustrations vary in detail. Some are hardly more than sketches. Most are very detailed, drawn to approximate scale, labeled, and including basic measurement. There can be no doubt that they were drawn by somebody familiar with the details of Ch’an monastic architecture. To a skilled carpenter they would have served as a comprehensive and reliable source of reference.
As the title of the document suggests, the plans illustrate the large official Ch’an monasteries in the Five Mountain or Ten Temple categories. Ching-shan, the senior “mountain,” was most frequently used as a model, followed by T’ien-t’ung-shan, Peishan, and A-yii-wang-shan. These plans suggest that a very small number of Chinese monasteries shaped the development of Japanese Zen monastic life.°
With this kind of illustration to assist them, reinforced by the suidance of those monks and the few artisans who were familiar with Ch’an monasteries, and by reference to such documents as monastic codes (ch ’ing-kuei), where buildings and their furnishings
are frequently mentioned, the builders of the early Zen monasteries in Japan could feel confident they were producing a fair facsimile of the Chinese model. Illustrations also survive which allow us to see clearly what the earliest medieval Japanese Zen monasteries were like, and to gauge their faithfulness to their continental models. Of these, the earliest and most detailed is the Kenchoji sashizu (Kench6dji ground plan).’°
The history of this document is checkered. In 1319 a fire de-
178 The Monastery and Sub-Temples stroyed many of the buildings at Tofukuji in Kyoto. To help them
in their work of reconstruction of what was to be a pure Zen monastery with no tincture of Tendai or Shingon, the Tofukuji artisans in 1331 made a copy of a master plan of the recently rebuilt Kenchoji. Kenchdji lost its master plan in a disastrous fire early in the fifteenth century, and later (1723) Kenchoji monks recopied the copy handed down in the family of the Tofukuji artisans. It is this later version that survives.'' Although it does not show the earliest form of the monastery, it does show Kench6ji as it was at the peak of its prosperity in the early fourteenth century. Since the Kenchdji style of layout was copied by
Tenrytji and other Japanese Zen monasteries, as well as the rebuilt Tofukuji, the ground plan, which is very detailed, can be
said to reflect the classical stereotype of the fully articulated medieval metropolitan Zen monastery. Other helpful early Japanese illustrated documents include the
Engakuji keidai ezu (Plan of the Engakuji compound), a ground plan showing the layout, setting, and boundaries of this compound in about 1330;'? the Sanshoji garanzu (Sanshdji ground plan), showing Sanshdji, an affiliate of Tofukuji, in the late fourteenth
century;'* the Eiheiji garanzu (Eiheiji ground plan)'* and the detailed painting, attributed to Sesshii, of Tofukuji in the second half of the fifteenth century.'* When these sources are combined with the Kenchdji ground plan, it is possible to build up a very clear picture of the layout and furnishing of medieval Zen monastic buildings. The authenticity of these early plans is attested by the fact that they tally very closely with the descriptions of these
monasteries and their buildings given in contemporary diaries, shingi, and other written documentary sources. The reader may wonder why so much reliance has to be placed on reconstruction through documentary evidence when so many
Zen monasteries still stand in Japan. Zen monastic buildings dating from before the Onin War do survive. The Buddha reliquary (shariden) at Engakuji (c. 1285),’®° the Buddha hall of Kozanji (Yamaguchi prefecture, c. 1320),'’ the monks’ hall (c. 1340), bathhouse (1459), and latrines (Muromachi period)
I
FIGURE 10 Ground Kench6ji, roun Plan an Oof enc Ojl, Kamak amakura
Ll ee
’
DD hLhLd”LhLlUrlrlLdLLULrUrLrlrt”té*=#RrrrrsC“‘( tw”:”:CLUC™”™C™C™C™C~C~Cs~i“‘(‘;SCSC#CO;ziC#;é#
2... ..hL.dhLhL..DL.LUmLU™hUCUhDLhULULLrrrCC Cl lCLChLD.LCLCL”FLhCLrLFrrrrr rrr rcCrClUcCLCUrcCLclLcULcCLCLCLlLrLCLr
Cl. l!l!lt,CUlrti“=‘Féemt”t”;*;”;”™”~”™~™~™~C~C~—C—C~C””C
,,Crrrtrtrt”t”t—“‘“‘“‘“‘“C ‘“ESOCO*#OCOwOtstsi‘(‘(CSYSCCCOWO#OCOw(‘(‘é‘CC((SSCOCOtwtététwCtiwéi‘(‘;CCOCZ#U
)~ htc‘ wLCLUL,ULU™C™C™Cs~i‘(Cr::C*C*;:;z;é:sésa=Céié;sSCNSCSCC;C:;sC;wséiCiéC#COC;C;CiCtisésC(i“(‘CC”COC;CéCésé‘“C(i(y:C*C;CéC*iCéC(‘(CR
))hCrrUlUlUl ee ,.,lrrr”C—~—“‘CWOYSNSTWCOCOCia‘(‘s‘i‘i‘C(C#;SCOCOCOCéti‘(‘(CSCSCOC#C(Ciéz#COi#®;
| @#3§&©€©}°}»}»}»}€=hCCCOCOCOCCCUr.UlUlUmUr”rlUCUCCOCOCOCUCUlUC
0 ee Ae ye Pore ee eee oe ee Ly Ce ae
8 lll a ee —= 0 Lo 7 Cee ae ae ee ee ee eee
a |... # # &}. # #.*.. ###&°% =~ ~~ «== ri“ “RLULU.U”U™CO”COCOCULCLOO.).ULUCUOtOwOwO~C~C~*~:~:~:~as 2. De aCe eee Pc ee De ee eeee ae eeey Ce eeoo eS EROS Se EePei 2 ree ETS ee aHORA 1 USEC ae ee eeee eee FC 7aefs8eae|ce oe Pe eee De a | ee, a ee oe CL CL ee a 7 ee ores ee ee ee SNE, oo Ss ge eG eae | a CUA ' eee eee a ee yee: ; Eee ae ee ee eae Se fo ae ee 8 es ee ee ee ee ERE ee ee eee cones eee fet ee Ee — ee Ce ee See oe Gas es a. aa 3 Dee Oe ee ees Senne te Ess eee a _Ainen aas aSee ee ee esa.i a. aes oeSee ae 7 eeee Hae Ne Ce eeee oe eee eee EeOECOU eeaege ae oe OF ieege 8oe |.heeeOe aoeeeoo oF es ee ES Esa Re eo Ons iss ae oes se ee ae Sn Le La ee | oe ee i ee ee Re ee oe ss FENG SS fo eee ee es acoee aeeBe Co ee Eo 7 Ae TU he lies —. As) eeeeeeee eer ee eseine es: NE ee eeiaecae 7PeLe |ae Le eo aeeLa|oe |.2CC ae (11696 ee ee ce ee Ve ep - oo ROR ea ea ee ae Ce eeewy Cy eya ee oo Me Bee ee oe aeake as eR ONY aunCs Se od:& 2aa EE a ee a oe ee oe Oe i eee a ee ON en oe ee Lo ee ee i ae ee Deg ee cue ee ee ee ee EE‘ SEOs A EG AU Ni hee ae POURED LPO ELE ae ee oe SO ses ESE ARS Ee a aeeeCyCe a aei ae eyeGTo eee Eh eeREeeReeeee aoe PTR Bo at HEOe Ee eeLOO eras Henon ONaooMa cee es ee a Ra Bees ea ae a.>= .|.eee ee eeaGe BASaSEER aa aen
Rhee Bogeeer OSES ie eaeea ns oe Oe ae ausa ae Ome Beey| oe ee ee aa eo i... es OSPSE SEESom Recep neers ance oe ae ayoo. a we Ce Ramer nee | Ee eebe . tay Cl.a an. iLLoo ee eee go: on: ee aOBESE Ce ae aieas a OOS iin eUre i ..ee Le .. yet ae eee ee
FEARS nuit SE, PHATE ASESEE ereSSE NS As NMG eo}a Oa Ce ie Reae RDS ay Ae, lL Fe eeeBee) ie esoe SIsore CFaaa SeeWe 2) nes: aeons DASE ee ee ee Gans a rags US SS SICILY ELEOS SIE.aeaeSee SUS ONC se Ye Ne BSS BAe EGE a Pesae mes eeeBe Geap ESeeBais pe: aWR es Re HyJESS ee \ YF oe eras BUI: i
erin ree ere ES Ee ea vee ee DEER LESSEE Bk ak ee OSES es Se ee ee eee ey ee es Cas CL eG ie @ eal a oe Ee HEED EEE OR pee ae ee
;
es Ee, Drees fe ee ee BHI ESS BES ee ee hee eee: aria sie ene oe EN Me eo RES Rene HEE Bee eae POEUN, BENS eS aes 1s | eeepc Pare one EES: poe sees ESSA er 28 Pee ne hades Seis,
PEE IER ME Ue eae cee eee EEE Ue SPs ena es sh ae nes ee ene eee ere eee ROLE RU er iC DAES AES COMER CES NC EG OC ae See eee ee ee Canes PEE 27h ESSE GS Caer een PRC Re a ieee rae reas BE
ee EEEeee EERE gO aia PEGE TS ee ceane ae ee EE es ea ROE ORY oe (ae eeeBe es aN eee UR a eeeeeSIGIR Be ES | eeeBee. ae eee FE SOSaeSUPE : SEES er eee MeNONE Ne et eae | rgeeek ieaaea ee eeeeee eeeS ROE OsasMee UO ae cl NEGUS i ee ieSES eesESSE SEE IE | Conroe Oe eet
DoS SSRsIO HESS ESS ee ee ee See eeES eeee Gea a Gee ee NA OWE Leste RRC earns Se MEGS eee. | Gees EES EG) GS Se ALU SESE Eee ARES ELSES EE SE ENGR BeOO i aebe eeUE RegOS esee aeSe eeGane Be eeENCES Cae eeeee es NUE te ieee ane ee oC eee 2 NG UO ee We Sey Suen U AER TORN ALPUNE ULESUE EEELESS “OSSPOPS RES
EES aeeee a:a aee 2 e .. Le i. . i ft ee oe ee i. ES oe sah oo a oe ee a Dee INE) iia ....ties ee0eee Cl ee De Ms | Ent .. ee ae ey ae eo BSS ee ee ee ERE! ql ee -. fee a avin a a a een . oe oo ee a ee 2 2. hr eeee eei SSPE Ee Becerra Be ee es ae De aes ee eva aa Ce ee ews He ee Be, ee eae Set tee AE ae ae [ ee eM HEN COON iN: Be EE SE EB i -
......ll EL aEe oo Oe Ne ee oa. i8. 2. |... ee es-.. a oe.. es ee ee ee. ae
HRNE ate? OE LUNN OEE OG SE ey SU aS ag Hy BROIL Sp ee) ee Re Ga a ane ee es] Gee We EN AP Ne oe a AR a en ee, aaa oe een: EON GI IRS ee 2 EB y CEN a RAE
ESA UE Nea ES:ee esDe ee ape aa ge Ee he peers Gillies MsithorUN esGEE eeaaBe) eo CN Neeeeee HEE EE a ly)oo a SeaA Aelel a Ceee GERM MOS: a ee eSCO DEC OS es oerRE CsSS De Se local Rete Gi, Bee eeBee ee aR SE PES a ea a ailRau Oita ineiad okIPBR ARG. ee Cte eee, AOE CD Ass egesis eee eee eeeara eesee eae
ts illuse Gozan trati ee” eksina Sa storied jissa of the , racteristic of S Y, s the elevation o VERE Se SEHean TD ERERS a eae ee, 3 AEN 8 Ss ee epeaptTee AEE Le INES SAE SS
e ENED ana AGRO Beas HRI SS:OES Reels a RUMOR ee i iret nate TEE e wea DATES clana OS anUI a en aia)ESR a SA IN SSMUMERIA GeePests eee ae oe
ried Buddha hall, chara jissatsu-zu shows th
wo ado . in »Man FWO colu ea ,’ nuain monasteri mns, the apan : Ch’ M th ’quic grace lllynasty een sweepi ully arche ;erties. e .pe
e°
roofs. The ;ooden s,prin the curved w fo r the $s ping tiled window peaes tals ears toinese the E aracters ted o rellis work, and ousan C trelli Photo gra h mperor. n the roof rid Pp courte O oom Ze read “ e Ko ° Lib ry b aijosi Ti pl a, eossibdle e
to Du ' ) a 1 the fang-chang 3ep early a picture of the Sung dyvario sty
‘ 9 stuaie in {r e‘ 9e -_
ctions of
instructedMONnks theIndgivl » P acticed privat 1071 Pvate 1. int m uall |eitation ervitk1 ®
The Abbot’s Building 199 as “entry to the chamber” (ju-shih, nisshitsu) and “asking for instruction” (ch’ing-i, shoeki), and held some of the occasional general evening assemblies known as the “little assemblies,” here that he conducted the day-to-day administrative and organizational business of the monastery in discussion with the various monastery officers, and here that he entertained local Buddhist dignitaries, monastery patrons, and officials of the civil bureau-
cracy. Since the building had to be capable of accommodating the whole community for evening assemblies or occasional tea ceremonies and be appropriate to the entertainment of ecclesiastical and civil dignitaries, there is little doubt that, by the twelfth
of buildings. |
century at least, the fang-chang was an imposing building or group
On the mid-thirteenth century ground plans of Ch’an mon-
asteries, the fang-chang is shown as comprising three component
buildings located directly north of the Dharma hall. At T’ient’ung-shan, there were two front fang-chang, an inner fang-chang and a meditation chamber and at Wan-nien-ssu (T’ien-t’ai-shan) a front fang-chang, fang-chang, and inner fang-chang.*? Of these, the innermost building was used as the residential chambers of the
abbot, the outer buildings as formal public reception and ceremony chambers. Taken as a block, these three buildings made up a very substantial area of the monastery. Around the ceremonial chambers and the abbot’s residential section were the offices of the monastery acolytes (shih-che, jisha) and rooms for assistants (hsing-che, anja).
In medieval Japanese monasteries, the hdjo occupied the same position to the north of the Dharma hall; however, the main area
of the building tended to be off the central axis. At Sanshoji, the hojo proper was set within its own compound to the northeast of the front hojo, which in turn was linked by a corridor to the rear entrance of Dharma hall.*°
The Kenchoji sashizu shows a ceremony chamber (raima), corresponding to the foremost fang-chang of the Chinese monasteries, immediately north of the Dharma hall. In other medieval Japanese monasteries, this building was also known as a tea hall
200 The Monastery and Sub-Temples (sadd) or rest hall (shindd). North of the ceremony chamber lay the great guest pavilion (daikyakuden) and 2-story inner pavilion known as the “moon-gaining tower.” These corresponded to the inner fang-chang of the Chinese monastery, comprising formal reception and guest chambers and the abbot’s private quarters. These inner buildings were approached by a covered and flagstoned passageway with a double folding door at its center known
as the “‘gateway to the mysterious” (genkan). The word genkan has now passed into everyday Japanese speech to mean a hallway or entrance porch, and few people are consciously aware of the
strong Taoist-Zen overtones of its components “mysterious realm” and “barrier.” The word was in use among Taoist-influenced T’ang poets; adopted by Ch’an as a fitting term to describe the entrance to the august presence of the Ch’an masters; transferred to Japan and later borrowed from the Zen monastery by aristocrats and warriors, becoming part of the aesthetic vocabulary of the Muromachi period.** It is not too far-fetched to assume
that this term played some small part in shaping Zeami’s consciousness of yugen, ‘“‘mysteriousness,’’ nor to suggest that the no actor, moving slowly along the bridge onto the stage, felt some-
thing of the sense of awe a monk might feel passing through the genkan to enter the chamber of his spiritual guide. Perhaps the most striking feature of the hojo of Japanese Zen monasteries is that, from a very early stage, they were built in
the Japanese aristocratic residential shinden-zukuri or shoinzukuri styles of architecture, whereas all other buildings in the compound were in the continental style. The Kenchdji ground plan of the inner hojo clearly shows the vertically opening wooden
shutter doors of the kind known as shitomido, a characteristic feature of shinden-zukuri architecture. There is also the suggestion
of a fishing pavilion (tsuridono) built out over the pond. The inner hojo at Sanshdji and Engakuji were also built in the Japanese
manner on wooden supports, not on a stone pediment. The early Tenryuji hojo is said to have been originally the residential section
(shinden) of one of the palaces of the Emperor Kameyama and
would certainly have been in the aristocratic Japanese style,
Bathhouse, Latrines, Washstands 201 with board floors and the rooms divided by the sliding paperpanel doors (fusuma), which provided a natural surface for ink, and later gilt, painters.
At least one part of the Kenchdji inner hdjo was 2-storied, the “moon-gaining tower.’ The 2-storied hojo was a common feature of medieval Zen monasteries. The Kenninji, Nanzenji, Sanshoji, and Engakuji ojo all had upper chambers, as did the hojo of many prominent sub-temples. That these upper chambers
were carefully decorated and used by the abbots as studies or guest chambers is indicated by references in the Inryoken nichiroku to the shogun admiring the view of Kyoto’s eastern hills from
the hojo pavilion at Kenninji. Although no 2-storied hdjo pavilions survive, the founder’s hall (kaisandd) at Tofukuji probably gives an accurate impression of what they looked like.
It was these elegant Zen monastic buildings with their fine views over gardens, ponds and into mountains, and with their moon-viewing platforms and airy rooms, that provided the model for those two symbols of Muromachi period culture, the Golden and Silver Pavilions.
The hojo was thus the instructional and administrative center of
the monastery or sub-temple. It was also, in Sung and Japanese gozan monasteries, a cultural matrix. It was around the hojo of the great monasteries and their sub-temples that the characteristic Zen garden developed. In its elegantly simple rooms the tea ceremony and art of flower arrangement were cultivated. Its alcovesandscreens provided space for talented calligraphers, ink painters, and painters of Zen portraits (chinso). And it was here that the study of Chinese poetry and thought was encouraged. It is probably to the hajo of the
metropolitan monasteries, to their incumbent abbots and their guests, rather than to some abstract notion of “‘Zen,” that we should look if we are to understand the precise nature of the influence of Zen on the art and culture of the Muromachi period. THE BATHHOUSE, LATRINES, AND WASHSTANDS
The Kenchoji sashizu shows the monastery bathhouse (yokushitsu)
202 The Monastery and Sub-Temples to the southeast of the main gate, linked to the other buildings of
the monastery by a short corridor. The latrine, referred to at Kenchoji as “western purity” (seijin), but in most other monasteries as the “eastern office” (tOsu), was located in a correspond-
ing position to the southwest of the main gate. From the ground plans of other medieval monasteries, it is clear that the locations of these two buildings were formalized in Japanese monasteries, although their positioning had been somewhat more functional in Sung monasteries. To the south of the monks’ hall was a small
building housing washstands referred to as the “rear stands” (goka or koka). The importance attached to these buildings in the Zen monastery is indicated by the facts that the bathhouse and latrine were included among the Japanese list of the basic seven halls, and that Zen monastic codes devote considerable attention to the etiquette and attitude of mind to be maintained in using these buildings.**
The bathhouse at T’ien-t’ung-shan in the mid-thirteenth century was a building 7 bays wide by 4 deep, situated to the southwest of the main gate.*® Over the door hung a plaque reading ‘“‘clarity”
(hsuan-ming), a reference to the lay Buddhist sage Bhadrapala who, with 16 followers, attained enlightenment and was granted bodhisattvahood through contemplation of water while bathing. Bhadrapala is the accepted patron figure in Zen bathhouses.
Above the entrance to the bathhouse proper hung another plaque reading “perfumed sea,” perhaps a reference to the perfumed water used in the traditional purification ceremony of bathing a statue of the Buddha. A statue of Bhadrapala was set on an altar table near the entrance. Before it stood an incense burner, with candleholders at either side. To the right of the altar was a hand-washing basin, to the left a large washtub. Left and right of these again were towel racks and stoves for airing damp towels. Platforms around three walls served as places for monks to disrobe and put on their bathing wraps. They hung their outer robes and the cloth wrappers containing their under-robes over the trellises around the bath. The bath, consisting of two large basins, was heated by a stove
Bathhouse Latri W h
RE 12 hous , an I hhe e atBat 1en-t ung4 sh Cee LEG A ee OG a pe . oo a Boos a ee eee eee ee ee ee ee | .alyee oye aPOM a.MG oeee ee SCRA 2oD a Le eeefC uee mic : io.4- |, u. He ‘ae oe >ae‘_ccolapapemmsnnctnci : eee ae : fey PUSS ee |ee ey ayLs;ee S L; ees : -_
nes ee ne 2 eee ‘ a eee : ee osON ae cees eyeee oy 7| a :| , 0 ee | SS -..RE eee
fey WES rR ACE PGE Gs Beg eT TPES ae :ae: ee etus : We 7 . oe oe :|oe ; : zaPIE) : peat eera ee eis :Lea : eats eee ° aa a.ow :,
wy PeeoeHani neem ie_.ae PEP ire: ry :,: :;. eeBs nsaev LPs oo 4es.Rear, .eT7 ene eee ve: aie 7: ae SS / _Cee :ee | _ee ye on Ae OS eee a... Cre i Hu: LS :. OI 0A FS
pe 2 a z a eee 3 b AS Be ee Ne, ae ee ern ee LAG ae a Elashduaicdigasioseads ie ae ; i = ia as LS:ae aeGE ee ae# btke oe ; Vpeste a ae We =: oe :||| i ee ee ee ie :: — - aaee JES BES HC SINE So PS : oo OOree eeeo Ie on a Pe Po io. : Te 2: a :: | || oes ee ASE EE a oe ae Poo ee eee on 4 ae : Sy , 7| ee eee | Cee oF i aoa , ve c 4 Nila ae ’EEC : tee oeUk ae esa pieee ee ee ee ae 2 aaee ooae ee SE ee oo ee iaamae aS ee oe ae ;Lo SESE aaS ae eae = 7ee oeae oie A: es nee aeaLa see” aoe ay , aepo | Bee ..aeee |er |e:eae a2Se . ee iL ee: ee eeEa acee ee Po 5|| :j||a ee Lae ieeoe Se ee oe 8ee ®
7 rrr Ca oe : See ce ee) be 7 CC Ca ee io ae hee | : | |
ce aoeee ae FI SMHe ed SseS : oetu we ee 7 a oe neee ee oe. aeaiTOoe ao es ae hes ee ect eee ininiliiesittccrasanideaduccidllgy HES eee cecence CC es :2 oeeeaan asae|=| 2:: -L:be:i: | ue & &ae Sie : ee paptees . aneWe a a ee ‘ saae ee: na : ee Couey: ORO0 ts‘Mee BGM Gaoeee Gn eae? ee24ee aes Po ae eee ee ee a Le Ae
eos ee es fr ae eae Po ee Bc a Seer ee Ca oo 0 ees . [24 oe : : ° 2
CIEE ENE POE fo EE poeta cae ae Pel P reo es eageiee 10 LI: Sie cas en ae Bee Qos Ls LOIRE SIO pe seer: ae 4 Leos ee y a | ,
SEM SiRF PERSE, : etee oe DT Sea:lee Pag fF E ge ee a Oe pees EE Se Paoes i. Ba:a |. |i 7‘|Hes eee eee aes ee 4 Renee oo aeee 7. | ee VB ce : Bo eee aaRe PoE coe ane Wes: BA, ae @ Ne Os ORS 6vo SR Maee :aoe Lo Bae ss aneets |se AES hl : aea:aae aeeen aeRU aee: ete 2ae eeteRe oe Re bes ve ba.:Iyer: ee -,:| ;:4 | 2eD |: eee oo rrBanani CE ee oe oa aoeL::Beaiaae
|ee : Lt. : aDCSE aesees oo 2 Cae agSoe :GN:ea Pe 2 on :i : 2te Ptae oe OFoo eeeee ae || :.|i: .:,4ve PIRES : aN ee) OY PEERING EES Se ieaseeee Co eeoes eee eeae rea* a|at eu:“ao ae ee a a LO 0) eee See |hleer aee Te “TCve | oo 7:::ce ae Be) : oe eeDeere : ee ee SSO Goosen ee -s CLES | 3: |j4|: : | as1 Co SLES Ep ee aoaes | eae eae Oo -Wes La ss Lo Lk ONeee sesoe aLG eee Sere en ee as ae a.Ur 2Ee L Loa :;-oo . 8.oeaeoe oeey SST arealBae SEs are Bags : Ae: Ny NE? aut . ¥| /i oe | eelePe eealas | ee#eres Bids aee 7.igioS oe pe ee ; a ie: eae= .: aa :reae (/aPe17LD EAN oe . ee Ce oe Poeee capee ayer ee ee oe |EO ee ae eeUe UGE AS He os PERE SSE HO Ne eaefeo We ees Eo | EES TGs Hae ee — ,.. : a . a i ; , , ee E ee ee 2 a a es ak oe | | a ae Bee Eh eee ee LIME eco inonn OO ane ae oo ee | | | Lo
oes Ds Oe ee LS ee ai oeeee 2|.Se eae AEG ee ee ee OI ee ee(eee NN ,; ceos foa /3| ee GSO Sessoo ee Ue oeee ee oe ks Mgrs iM a;: cae ISAS . eeeeWee anGG eeee 2eeee ee ee Bee oe : iee ae , ee ee : ee ee ee Papaane MES EMI a Cee eer Py Ae ioe senile OL OO DM ie aiaceaka Bi: OOS eo os Rigs: fit ; 4 : |
cL | aoes a aeee vy 7..i a~~ ee ee eeaenw ee ee Peep oe :,oa) rm Beet ge. :, :Bo: cf eee ANS ee One ees ogeens hs Sree ; :pe AAS ::: i : ee SPSL :87 ee oy Ee ee es . 2. Oy oeDe ae ee & a Daa) i ie ane qe ie we 7ed cc TI INaee os gue | eee Dtco eePe oe ae oo ame as:& pepsi es eefeSeEe Dee 2EN eegee - eae Ge aaaeeee Lee .can | .& aye 1. ai4eee . ee 7 eege feaee a pe2. ae7! neqOey PON eee 4 oe oe ee aeeeosee| 7ty ney wet a eee eee SSS NEI ae ee I Pe ee a we a | cee .ee | 4;ae — ee oe ee eeee Ge ae Ges ees senate ins ms of |-oo . Lo aBe Loe De Le oe (2i ee DEC ooBeier ee f bee oiclome aes Ran EES }a: a oe o e oy i:‘ : ee :_cg ee Pe ee ee Pee Lee I ee eee ie ae eee es sone mrrrritTiin pigiitRea, . eeow oe to. a | 7 i . Rue oeuae ; Peon Co.rf77 enauauent _ ee ee ae oe ee oe Coe a enree eeeae a vor 7 |ow | . eevee Peet Me a 7 oe oe oe| Ls :ies oe roe >aONLe ;..ee=||eeGELTibibl ee |oe oe eeE aeee | a| ee|paoes EGLe i eee) ene a— oo Moe eset la— omy Sh eee ee ae, Geesoe |2 ete taeee | eeeG ree bee eee eeeae oo PsOe oeyhet (_— ¢(|. oeaeesoo i.7ence_Tiiiia oe oo oe ce ENE aee ee aie eege oe asAe =2 4 eee a_ a |= Ne— Shey=AG es Mees eee SSaeeoe | aeee : oe iMe aS SMI Es?| peepee ee ae fe be oe ww eee, | ee aeee ae eee ae ae AN ok |. oe . Lo a =a ae | ee oe Pee oe @ . aoe ee |— a Pe ee oo a , oe . ess eo ea i 0 ge a hl |. ew a ee yee oe ne Coe oe ee i bad et et 2. 2 2a 5,5 = Aa 4 ee Cog ere ees ee , Coe Can 5s Mia Ra i i i be oo ae oa oe oe ee eees ee eeSe8asoe a| eeoe oeooCe _aeoeaoe aWee . Co aeanal: ce aFeoe ee ee oo eeSEoeee Fh oo _ oe oeae oe.a.[i sees, Ce esEe ppaeee Neos eeeei oe 2S feCF ees pe LO a 5 ae eo ee esaaa_Heeea 7aa ee ae oe eeeea me eeLe.a >eeCsee Apes es Oeseneeae SS EES Eo ee ce ae ee a i oe Ve oo ae , a | Le : | oe poe . Le cae : ae Q _ 7 oo — oe Ce ce oo a a. 2 a . Lo) ae } es 8 . See fe Boe 3 ee a ae as ee Le es ae eeoD 8 aoe ee oe ee aee . ee 8 oo ’ ee ee8 aeCee ee ee eeoeoe eeeget: Pe nsee geioae ee ee: eeDLP osCe oe Me eeeeLae es ae oF oo ee ee LC ge ee,Wee ce oo ee a . oe o oe ae ee SES ee ee as ae SS oS ee Boge | Cl ee Os A oe EE ee ee DS Mi: ie Serer a ee ee . Le a8 ee ooCe ee . oe ee os oe oo oe ae foe, : ee aeee ae ne Wiga! 6 ooi. es os CeeoF oS a ee a8 eC oe ae oe 0 ae a oo ee Lo i i MN FT. DC 2. oe (7 i . ae . a _oe i ee Les Lae soe ge aSUees oe -sign oo eae eefUs ee oa) oe bine: ee OU aes Ls ef: ees eeeee Pee ee ee es eS Seeay Ge COLON ee aRe 7.asoe | oD Ce eeho OO ONG ae oe CU — 2aeee eseee LeLoe eeneae aasSPs or, eeaee Te ue tee Oe Mae Do — _ ee ee te oe 5 ae. ee oes Ae (eee eS gs | i a : co thom py pending Le oe a. i oe — oe ee ee Le ENSoe ay Naa Ce Cooo ee Se Boe eoie ares es ee. oeee EES eae Le oeaSans Wes ai| a|ee we ee Mas ee ee aage Lo 0eeoe. iere:. oO |eeVie oe ee oe eee — eS Ce ieeoe iheee ee oo | ee ee ee ee Ws a)siiee 8ok ee ee a aoe eeAE ae ES ee . : . Lo ao oo oe Cee eee ee 3 oe ae og oc “s a 2. ee ee . a 7 Oe oe oe ee | ee ee eee UsToa ae Ce ie Os -aga.Wee a EN ony. NG a pay ee io. ee es8eeoe Loe! es ie eM aeLy oeee7Esa.eeoe | eo ae IM a oe ooesA Wey og ES eeesaPEE oes
ae ~~ we DLL LL oe - 7 Ce ee es
oe ee : a ee ss Cea Pig esse e: eens ae RE Roe ee LO es Ne OS Se eal Sasi Nee ae te ee OG) PS) te Snes 8? | ees cS) eee PLUM CS AME Mg a Mee: Be Ales 28 RS
Eater eee PEE BY MC OG s ee ES EEE S ESS eee eae HEE ion a ete eee SES Pies ee eu SSO Se ae oe ee ee LD Ay ee HES EINES iG eee ps ene | ee SE BEERS ee Rn ie oa
ioEee oe oe| Cl. 7Heeseeco ceaeus aee eeecoe CANO) |Unaas —aeee eae We, ee ee co.Seoe ye 2.es. Le ee lo -A ae Lee ooae8aeoe 7oe a oe ee:DOSES Sea eeeoe seeaee Ce DE AEE ES eee Oe ane eee Bea s OO Oevo es ee ae i Lg Ce Oe ee, Ge Ce a Pes as.ceae ae ee Ta ee ee es ee ae es . ee ee ae OR be, ie ee ae oo esee Ces : a oe ve ee - > oe oo . a Co lo Le — ge ae a oe
ee ee ee ae |.a)aoe .es=oe a.>Seee Aee aCee aeseee oo ee ae hl” 7oe..:_ Le a. US oo .sC oe te ee We gg ~~ 7. ee a an _. a. le CC oe NO ee a oe ee ee ae ce oes oe | ee ey oe eee [7 Q eee a ee LS ee |.aoo ooee ~~. eeae aeeeeee CEs a aafo i aoe |ee.@ 7. aeas ee foe ee ee3 eeee ee a| oe iia Do iAe ge eeiaes eess geste) i2ee ee a { ins ue Si. ee ee g ee ee ee ks a . | Lit Oe gy 8 ee oes ee es es Le Q Pinu eae a Fe Te oe 1er Cc a el ee 7 ce ee ee ens ee Cl 4a ieo Cie CO MOS FO 8. aae ee D Pit ee ee ae aLe Fh pee .iee ee ce oo LL aSEN fk oe te oe .ae oo a . ge oe oe ee(ee oes ee oe aoo) oe LG as oe | . oe Ne ee woe ff aoe oe Oa aee ee eee i. Cee oe |e es oe iMe .ee oe aDe oe Ae oe oo.ooe ee ee TT ge ow Eee) ee ee PUENTE es.oe ise Ce a ee Me oe Os aee ee a. ee ee Ug eee ee nee oo _Nas .aeaLo iOs oo . |... 2 Ce ee We ae ee ee ee a. as es ee ae a.| oe|.eee| oeees aii eeoe ey ae|eee eee Pi oo. oa a ao es oo. > 1a) Oy eg gee ho O SINC SSO Me a oe ee oo ee a eee a fygrr aph ee i aMe 7te>“Sa - anKaae and eee 8a |okyo ne CO CeDaijoni a, Ul aKanazawa, i8Ti ks Ch esy of omazawa Uni . eee ae a ee, Ms PS ee Pe ee . Bee ee UE SEG UE EEN: ee ao oes — Le ed eee CONES SI ee eee Lee Ce ES 2B ae 3 He 5
ee) ie eee es es Ue ee oo Dae a cn ee oe Ke _ es ee BOE ESE se ee Ee EERE: I es Gel Geen ee es Ee eo) Le
Pe as ee ee DEES USS ee SUM a Se eee BOs Be) ae ORGS SS See POO Eo Ria ee es ena putas Be Aa Ryo Oy ee eee RH: eae | ee eae ees pee Tee Bene. Ce eee DES E CRPES Rae ia
SEAMS Sees HIM See ES Bee || Cae
of bathi iversity Librar
ou r ashi sterle al uji (M changi , Daitokuji i period ivin paire ° uromachi Mm rvivl ji, an _ iod, but f 5 all contain ,dS My@shin 11 t W ire quentl steam b i (both y reInto h c evente O araburo) in | enth cen) ) g was standard in sixteenth b y,ses howeve en mon ainremedieval , fashions were S. e
Trincipal , the er 11 1SSa u 1n-S Qwl SU oe
principal latrine a stepped
.° blarO
ssu, asthe sh |Gozan t the Chi ji naste . lon door h o the uilding 9 Ce d Al 8 P laque re 1 all b ac ‘s one the rian ading ‘‘ y orridor.*”’ Yl easte otti ° Ov bu ; the wall ice”’ (t wi u)to ° oor. Ano rner at d were 18icles, cubicleach ung-ssu,
: enter of ctopus”’ ‘ nse etiqu ‘ e stan ritu : tne Incen left-h, just SOinside » used the f eas air f or €
placed at the c ther larg “ with an ince ette, s 1 al . The incense, used was
further alo ront door, w t. Along th
used for c:water, er of urin the wall »asins wereofa di num 2tuftersr8evacuati arryin Finals g water to purify h ppets, and wooden sto id . Here als the receptacles before
° r use d
forthe conta placed the| efipumi and cleansi of aearth ish-sh sIng theiners hter f shes, wards n-powde
Bathhouse, Latrines, Washstands 205 A rail running down the length of the center of the hall served as a place to hang towels and outer robes, with tags provided for
identification. Damp towels could be dried and aired over the stoves and drying racks. In the interior of the hall was a furnace and cauldron of hot water for final hand-washing. This was super-
intended by the “stoker,” whose office is shown beside it. Five lanterns along the center of the hall provided illumination when needed. The patron deity of the Zen latrine was Ususama Myoo (Uccusma), whose compassion for those in the bonds of life was such that he was prepared to enter and purify the foulest places. Before using the latrine, monks were required to remind themselves of his virtue.
The Kenchdji ground plan is less detailed. It does, however, show the same kind of long, narrow building with cubicles along one wall and what looks like a stove and wash place in the southeast corner. The only surviving Japanese Zen monastery latrine (tosu) is that at Tofukuji in Kyoto, a long single-storied building to the south of the monks’ hall.*® The interior of the building is now in disrepair, making it difficult to reconstruct its original appearance. However, a plan of the building made before deterioration shows rows of cubicles on both sides of the entrance door, urinals farther in, and a cauldron and washstand at the far end of
the building. There is little doubt, therefore, that the furnishing and use of the latrine in the medieval Japanese Zen monastery followed the Chinese model very closely. Dogen’s description of the proper etiquette and attitude of mind to be observed while using this building, included in the regulations he compiled for his Japanese disciples“? echoes the descriptions given in earlier Chinese
codes and tallies precisely with the illustration of the latrine at Chin-shan-ssu.
The ‘rear stands” (goka or kdka) was a building in which monks washed their faces and cleaned their teeth in the mornings,
and washed their legs and feet before entering the monks’ hall after a journey.°° This wash house was always located very near the monks’ hall, either directly behind it or, as at Kenchoji, immediately to the south of it. Originally the building was nothing but a wash house. By the Southern Sung dynasty, however, it
206 The Monastery and Sub-Temples became, in some monasteries, an outer annex to the latrine. An
early stage in this transition can be detected on the Kenchoji ground plan. By the sixteenth century, the word koka had passed
into colloquial Japanese as a synonym for kawaya, meaning latrine.
The plan of the “rear stands” at A-yii-wang-shan in the midthirteenth century shows a large washstand, “two feet six inches high,” in the middle of the room.*' At the center of this stand was a bath containing cold water, and arranged around this several dozen washtubs and some containers for tooth-cleaning powder. Hot water, if needed, was taken from a cauldron at one end of the stand. A smaller stand held water pitchers and bowls of salt and ginger for cleaning mouth and teeth. Although there is no sign of them, the split willow twigs used for brushing the teeth were probably also kept here. In this building, too, stoves and trellises were provided for drying and airing towels. These, then, were the carefully arranged and furnished hygienic
facilities of a medieval monastery. In some larger Chinese monasteries, where 600 or 700 monks and as many attendants (anja) were in residence, separate latrines and wash houses were also provided for the assistants and itinerants. The abbot’s building would also have had its own self-contained conveniences. The product of the latrines, gathered in huge earthenware jars, was used to fertilize the monastery lands. THE MONKS’ HALL
The monks’ hall (sodo) was the spiritual powerhouse of the medieval Zen monastery. Where the monasteries of other Buddhist
sects housed their monks, as at Toshddaiji (Nara), in individual cells built in blocks around the central lecture and worship halls, Ch’an regulations, from an early date, stressed that all monks should live a communal life in a single open hall.*? In the space of the single mat allotted to him, each monk sat for long hours in meditation, took his meals in silence, and stretched out for the few hours of rest allowed.
The Monks’ Hall 207 Since it was on the meditation platforms of the monks’ hall that “Buddhas were made,” the hall was frequently referred to as the “place for the selection of Buddhas” (senbutsujo). And since
it was to this hall that monks came from all directions ‘ike clouds and vapors” to pursue their individual struggles for enlightenment in communal meditation around their patron, the “holy monk” (shds0; usually represented by a figure of Monju, the bodhisattva of intuitive wisdom), the hall was also referred to as the “cloud hall” (undo) and the “hall of the holy monk” (shosodo).
The origins of the monks’ hall are as obscure as the origins of
the Ch’an sect. The generally accepted model of early Ch’an monastic development is that, for the first few generations after Bodhidharma, Ch’an practitioners moved from place to place as solitary mendicants or in small groups who meditated out of doors or used the facilities of the monasteries of other sects. From the fourth and fifth generations, the number of Ch’an devotees increased sharply and more settled communities began to appear, frequently in remote areas, with their own distinctive pattern of monastic life. It was probably at this stage that the monks’ hall began to develop as a communal center for meditation and that rules for the conduct of Ch’an monastic life were first laid down. Pai-chang (749-814) is usually given credit for drawing up the first Ch’an code of rules, for liberating the sect _ from dependence upon the buildings and regulations of monasteries of the Vinaya (Lt) school. We have already suggested that there is little concrete evidence to support this assertion.
One of the earliest unequivocal descriptions of the Ch’an monks’ hall is to be found in the Ch’an-men kuei-shih (1004).°?
Thus, although we cannot pinpoint the precise origin of the Ch’an monks’ hall, there is no doubt that, before the Sung dynasty, it had already taken on a very characteristic form and was regarded, together with the abbot’s building and Dharma hall, as one of the most essential Ch’an monastic buildings. The Ch’an-yuan Code (1103) stresses the priority of the monks’
hall and makes frequent reference to the activities conducted
208 The Monastery and Sub-Temples there. The first volume of the code, for instance, after emphasizing
the importance for Ch’an monks of receiving and keeping the Vinaya precepts, goes on to describe the equipment needed by monks in the monks’ hall, the correct way to pack and carry this equipment, the procedure for entering the itinerant monks’ hall, the procedure for enrolling in the monks’ hall, and the manner in which meals should be taken there. In a later section of the code, the procedure and posture for meditation are described in detail. Moreover, newly appointed abbots, like any ordinary monks, were instructed by the code to go first to the monks’ hall and enroll: The new abbot enters the monastery. At the great gate he offers incense and delivers a sermon. He then proceeds to the monks’ hall, in front of which he takes off his bundles, goes to the washstands and washes his feet, then enters the hall, salutes the “holy monk,” and offers incense. When he has completed enrollment in the monks’ hall he may proceed
to the great hall...”
During the Southern Sung dynasty, the centrality of the monks’ hall in the monastery seems to have been eroded. Later Ch’an codes are more concerned with the niceties of organization of
ceremonial functions conducted in the Buddha hall than with strict monks’ hall practice. The Ch’i-hsiu Pai-chang Code regrets that monks’ halls had been adversely affected by the development of private retreats (tu-liao or tan-liao) set up by monks who, on retirement from office, not only declined to return to the monks’ hall themselves but also used monks from the hall as assistants or servants. These independent halls are already mentioned in the
Ch’an-yuan Code as guest quarters for dignitaries but not yet condemned as a cause of degeneration of the communal life and discipline of the monks’ hall.**
In spite of these hints of declining vigor, the monks’ hall was still a dominant feature of Southern Sung Ch’an monasteries and was copied faithfully in Japan. This is clear from a comparison of illustrations of the monks’ halls at Ling-yin-ssu and Ch’ingshan with those at Kenchoji and Tofukuji.
The Kenchoji sashizu provides a very detailed plan, with
The Monks’ Hall 209 measurements, of the monks’ hall at Kenchdji in the early fourteenth century. The hall was situated to the west of the central axis of the monastery, between the great gate and the Buddha hall and linked to both by the western corridor system. At Kenchoji, this hall was known as the “great attainment hall’? (daitetsu-
do). The three characters making up the name were engraved on a wooden plaque and hung above the front entrance, which opened to the east. Externally, the building was 7 bays wide by 8 deep (exclusive of the encompassing corridors). Internally, it was divided into an outer hall (gaido), linked by a passageway to
an inner hall (naidd). Between the inner and outer halls were 2 light wells (mindo).
The most prominent features of the inner hall were the kneehigh meditation platforms arranged in blocks around the walls and in the body of the hall. On these platforms the monks who were formally enrolled in the hall sat in meditation, took their meals, and slept. In Japanese monasteries, the platforms were surfaced with tatami mats. In Chinese monasteries, rush matting was used in summer and rugs in winter. Since the long northern
and southern platforms were counted as double blocks, the Kenchoji monks’ hall would be described as a 12-block hall. Single blocks were each 2 bays long. At 5 tatami mats to a bay
(the average at Tofukuji) this would have allowed 10 monks to a block, making a total seating capacity for the Kenchdji hall of about 120 monks. The platforms were just deep enough to allow monks to stretch out and sleep. Against the rear walls were shallow cupboards into which were put bedding, under-robes, the blade used for shaving, and the monks’ few other possessions. Each monk’s set of bowls
used for eating and taking tea was placed on a ledge above this cupboard and his spare outer robes on a rail running the length of the back wall. The outer edge of the platform was made of a length of polished, but untreated, timber about 12 inches wide running the length of the platform. This lip was treated with the greatest respect. During meditation, the monks’ kasaya (kesa) rested on the lip. It was also used as a meal table and as a headrest
210 The Monastery and Sub-Temples at night. All Ch’an codes stress that monks should be careful not to set foot on this “pure area” when getting up onto or down from their places. During meditation, monks sat on cushions facing the back wall. For meals they turned and faced the body of the hall, laying out their bowls in a carefully prescribed manner on the lip of the platform before them. Above each monk was a tablet bearing the four characters making up his name. While he was on the platform he left his sandals neatly under it. Other features of the inner hall were a central altar dais and the abbot’s chair. The altar bore an image of the patron and spiritual leader of the hall. This was always referred to as the “holy monk” (shOso). In most monks’ halls, the figure represented was MafijusrT
(Monju), dressed in the robes of a monk and armed with the sword of perception. The “holy monk” faced east, that is towards
the front door of the hall. Before the dais was an altar table bearing an incense burner, flanked by candles and flowers, and on the southern side of the dais a wooden block and mallet used to signal meals or the beginning of meditation sessions or hall ceremonies. Movements in the hall, as elsewhere in the monastery, were done to prescribed sound signals. There was thus little cause for speech or confusion. The abbot’s meditation chair was placed just inside the northern
portal of the entrance to the inner hall. He sat facing the “holy monk.” A screen stood behind his chair; a small table set in front of it was used at meal times. The order of seating position in the hall was determined in relation to the “holy monk.” Those platforms in front of the altar dais were known as front hall (Zendo), those behind as rear hall (godo), those to the left of the “holy monk” as upper places (jokan), those to the right as lower places (gekan).
The senior officers in the hall thus sat on the platform to the right of the abbot’s chair; other hall officers and senior monks sat on the platform to his left and on the “upper” and “lower” platforms at the rear of the hall. Other monks were placed in order
of the length of time since their ordination. In a large hall, new entrants would thus be placed on the platform just behind and to
The Monks’ Hall 211 the right of the “holy monk” and would “move up” in serpentine fashion as monks above them left the hall.
The abbot made his entrances and exits through the front door, always using the upper, northern side. Ordinary monks used the back door, or, if they should use the front, were careful to use the lower, southern side. To avoid jostling or stumbling
and to encourage constant mindfulness, the codes direct that, when entering the hall, monks should raise the left foot over the lintel first.
The inner hall was reserved for monks who had formally enrolled (kata) in the monks’ hall for the season. Even the abbot was
not exempt from this requirement. The administrative officers (chiji) of the monastery, whose duties meant that they had to be elsewhere in the monastery for much of the time, sat on the inner platforms of the outer hall. They were required to return to the platforms of the inner hall when they had finished their term in office, though, as we have seen, some did not do so but set themselves up in private retreats. Monks in charge of sound signals, itinerant monks, monks who intended to enroll but had not yet done so, elderly monks, and lay visitors used the platforms just inside the front door of the outer hall. Since those who used the platforms in the outer hall did so only for meditation or meals, and slept elsewhere, the platforms in this area were only half the depth of those in the inner hall. In the open space in the center of the outer hall stood trestle tables upon which the tubs of rice, soup, and vegetables and the pitchers of hot water and urns of tea carried from the kitchen by the assistants (anja) were rested before the meal and between servings. When not engaged in distributing food, the servers stood
beside the tables. The only other furnishings of the outer hall were the drums and bells for signaling assemblies, meals, washing, bathing, and other daily activities.
The spaces on either side of the passage linking the outer and inner halls were intended to allow more light and fresh air to reach the inner hall. Even so, the interior of the inner hall was always gloomy. This half-light was conducive to meditation. Moreover
212 The Monastery and Sub-Temples the hall was not intended for study but for Zen practice through meditation; meditation carried on during meals and into slumber. Deepening of the understanding acquired through meditation and discussion with the elder by study of sutras and the writings of
earlier Zen masters was done in the reading room, not in the monks’ hall.
The main doorway of the outer hall gave directly onto the western corridor of the monastery. On its other three sides, the hall was bounded by a covered corridor used for walking meditation (kinhin) to ease the legs during extended sessions of seated meditation (zazen). The corridor also served to insulate the hall
against any extraneous noise. Monks going to the washstands, bathhouse, latrines, or one of the other halls normally made their exit from the rear door of the inner hall. The section of the corridor between the rear door and the washstands was known as the illuminated hall (shddd) because extra windows were provided
to relieve the near-darkness of this out-of-the-way corner. This section of the corridor was also occasionally used by monks’ hall officers to lecture to the monks.
The basic similarity of the Kenchoji monks’ hall with the monks’ halls of Ling-yin-ssu and Ching-shan is evident from a glance at the plans of the monks’ halls in these monasteries. However, the inner hall at Ling-yin-ssu was a 16-block hall, bigger
than anything known in Japan, capable of accommodating upwards of 200 monks. This in turn necessitated a larger outer hall. The hall at Ching-shan was a massive 20 blocks, capable of accommodating between 300 and 400 monks.*® The Ching-shan monks’ hall plan is particularly valuable, since it gives the seating positions of the various monastery officers and
functionaries as well as the basic measurements of the hall.*’ North of the abbot, on the first platform sat the prefects (t’ouchu, choshu): the chief seat (shou-tso, shuso), scribe (shu-chi, shoki) and the eastern and western sutra hall stewards (hsi-ts’ang,
seiz6 and tung-ts’ang, tozd). Senior monks who did not hold formal office, known as the western hall (hsi-t’ang, seido), sat
| ee °
FIGURE 14 The Monks’ Hall at Ching-shan
LLL CD lla aae pee ee even oe, : oo ‘f ee oea leOO. CC a oeee aeeaeCo (oo GOO i oe Oo. ee ee
LleyLe acul agA Oe eeHOE ee SSE ESE ORAS QM eee LUNI i RAP SERAaLoecsee EN : FOAs EOE EEee SEE ea)ae aalene Cs a es asAiea Ce,NIKLAS Boe sil ae tioeisiiaaes eee hee aan:eee aee aor
ssa iin ini en A ian ae ER SS ia Ge ae i ae OG STN TEENS SIG ES NSU NOSIS Seon shee ae : oe ere carers a Se Mae
eee ee: oe NGoe PUES ey NOs Ceeen oe eeooOo 7ee : c iparen cc :ie y yy :aee . .es) Lo. Co. — eaee eee Tee ee aaiedhe oe Ve oo 7ee We ee eS:8Ss ee UE ne ee 2Eeaeee oo ase Poe oy Ne cee ae ue ee Picea ere ane as GOs ee Sig eee aa Ve VO ee oe 8 nn : 78a.| Wess eee ee ee EM Te are ae ae Ce OM GS Oe oe ee eS ee we o ee |ae ” eo ao a , . 8 i c oe oe oo Oe ge Se Ca) Oe TE Perens 7 oe ee 4) ae Bs eas | \: :(creer: DsBe ay oo oo Hi a. eR LE assoeeee oe EC ee eee ee See aLo a oe a en ee ee ee es oo oe © oe a rs ae nee cee i ey Bete omnia aaoaen EE ee AUSee IES USE Feldees vaso eeRe Mee 7 oe ae eety ee eeaeeyy ee igs. esDee ees peea. . 4 +41 ae ;‘ coe ae. ee ee Cag i . Le :Pete fae a Baas os ape ose BURNS Ronnie Rupe carer ees ees ee EASES OARS RUBS IN ay eee ere ae eee Se) seem UTE Es EN ENED | oe we a ee 7 ESS OG ae 2 oo Uhm CC ee oe a o 3 - DEE OBIS Usha Bee gee Be ee ke ee eee ONE SIV ne IE Gees Sey ean ee eee : a AE A? Cur 7. amen Begs: 7ee|Uy: ES so ee SEY IG 9 eee EE Renee PGs HS eG CO eee oe CE es ESE eh OE 8 eT Poe ee eae Ce ho asia Boe Sigs ee is
Ve Ce ee 7. As 7 ee a ee ole eee oe A oe ‘ t . og oe ee of oe ee = Rego ce eee oe : A eae Oe LEE Se he, Lae SO 0 Da a Oy DE or a, . Cg goes : tt ba ie " a Le oo fe i of ae ee oe we ie a7)é Jeneanesae a aa. co:aCe es OO an.a ES EN) SieOGL een aeeiad I ss oe : |,oe eee 7-esoa aaa ae OS ie Gane LOS Tn " ye) cecoah a ee Pee i . ee °° Lr CG & a | . ae a | 2 ees ss Ue a = =. eR Me ee as ee ee pe Be a 7 ee LN eee oe SS ge ee ee eee ii ie Ne ee eee puis woes eS eens7oo ee eea.aeae eesae CL =LL.rrreee es7aeage ee 0 eee LO iS ee ee CeWO. ene UN eee ee CEL ee : oeee 2LL. oe Ne i..eee Es aoe one aao Oe oeSe ie :ae|| “ 0b . “Higashiyama no zGeibackto sono haikei” % Da Wir tL 49 Asanso % (The ground to the building of the Higashiyama Pavilion), in Chuseino kenryoku
tominshn FP 9 76 & BIRR Osaka, Sogensha, 1970. Kuwata Tadachika g8 ®@ %, #§, . Toyotomi Hideyoshi kenkyi ¥ EB
3 & tit i, (A study of Toyotomi Hideyoshi). Tokyo, Kadokawa Shoten, 1975.
Kyoto Kokuritsu Hakubutsukan mA 5A fz) 32 1. 44] BE . “Sogen-ga
to Zen’in gakuji” R Io Be ps PZ, eR "Z. (Sung and Yuan paintings and calligraphic plaques used in Zen monasteries). Exhibition Catalogue. Kyoto. Kokuritsu Hakubutsukan, 1973.
346 Bibliography Lancaster, Lewis and Whalen Lai, eds. The Early History of Ch’an in China and Tibet. The Berkeley Buddhist Studies Series. Forthcoming. Langlois, John D., Jr. Review of John W. Dardess, Conquerors and Confucians: Aspects of Political Change in Late Yuan China, Journal of Asian Studies 34.1:218-220 (November 1974).
Mangen Shiban A 7G Bp ¥ . Enpo dentoroku ak. 3. 1B xe. SK (The Enpo period transmission of the lamp). Dai-Nihon Bukkyo Zensho,
vols. 69 and 70 KB ys 420 Loe | , Mass, Jeffrey P. Warrior Government in Early Medieval Japan. New Haven, Yale University Press, 1974.
Matsumoto Shinhachiro 4% 7X a BB. “Nanbokuché no nairan”’ 3 BA OA 44, (The warfare between the Northern and Southern courts), in Chiisei shakai no kenkyan FY #2 Fn ZO BH — Tokyo, Tokyo Daigaku Shuppankai, 1956. Matsushita, Takaaki. Ink Painting. Tokyo, Weatherhill, 1974.
Matsuyama Zensho 4A Wn & AZ . “Tohoku chiho ni okeru
Sotoshi kyodan seiritsu no tokushusei’’ g ILIA rw, ? fe Re Bl A MK 309 +4 BR yh. (Characteristics of the development of the Sotd school in the northeastern region of Japan), Nihon Bukkyo 10:38-54 (January 1961). —— “Kinsei Tohoku ni okeru shin Bukky6 no denpa to kyodan keisei”’
eRe STs Pine oat HH %
(The diffusion of ‘‘new’’ Buddhism and sect formation in northeastern Japan
during the early modern period), in Nihon shiikyo-shi kenkyu,9 8 ys
a a Yi ti AF . Ed., Kasahara Kazuo, Kyoto, Hézokan, 1967. McCullough, Helen Craig, trans. The Taiheiki: A Chronicle of Medieval Japan.
New York, Columbia University Press, 1959. ; Minegishi Sumio H&E F Ft, KH. kkS ikki? —fY—FR (The tkko uprisings), in Koza Nihon rekishi 8, Chusei 4. Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1976.
Miura Shake 2. 2 E\47 . Nihon-shinokenkyn @ EY 9 oF ¥, (Studies in Japanese history). Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1922.
Miyasaka Yusho Z th % AR . Koyasan-shi 3) ¥} da (A history of Mt. Koya). Tokyo, Koyasan Bunka Kenkyikai, 1962.
Mizuno Kogen 7K ¥P 34 ay and Hirata Takashi FF @ ® rt . Dogen:
Rinzai Zenkashu 13 i: £E ae 4% pa : 3 (Selected works of Dogen and Rinzai Zen masters). Tokyo, Tamagawa Daigaku Shuppan-bu, 1972
Mochizuki Shinjo ZR TE, , et al. Butsuzo (zoku-hen) 4 4%
Bibliography 347 4G, £5, (Buddhist statues). Tokyo, Nihon Hoso Shuppan Kyokai, 1965.
Mori Katsumi #e % OB . Nissd bdekinokenkyn 8 RK HP
Shoin, 1948. :
Ai %, (Studies in Japanese-Sung trading relations). Tokyo, Kokuritsu
Mujaku Dochu e. A re ¥- —-. Zenrin shokisen AR Th g = ¥ (A compilation of terms used in Zen monasteries). Kyoto, Kaiyo Shoin, 1909.
Muju Ichien R12. —- A .Shasekishia 2) 7a : 3 (Collection of sand
and pebbles). Nihon koten bungaku taikei @ EX & HK KA vol. 85. Ed. Watanabe Tsunaya [Kw FQ 42) . Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1976.
Muso Soseki od . tk @ . Muchii mondo e i Par] % (Discussions in dreams), in Zengaku taikei AR. 4 KX & , Soroku-bu 48. 4% , Vol. 4. Tokyo, Ikkatsusha, 1912. Also, Mucha mondoshu, Ed. Sato Taishun
JE. fe EH -. Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1934. —— Rinsen kakun Ff. 4 % 34] (The Rinsenji House Code). Kokuyaku
Zenshi sdsho. Vol. 5. 6) AFH RE ¢ . Tokyo, Kokuyaku Zenshu Sosho Kankokai, 1920.
—— Muso Kokushi goroku ¥ 2. BE) FP 24 4% (The record of Muso Kokushi). Kokuyaku Zenshii sdosho. Vol. 5.
My®San Eisai (Yosai) BR lr z % .“Shukke taiko” 2 ; a K FB (Basic provisions for entry to the monastic life). In Kinomiya Yasuhiko
KERB, Hisai Zenji HB F¥EP (The Zen master Eisai). Tokyo, Hinoeuma Shuppansha, 1916.
—— “Kozen gokokuron”’ Si 4H By BE) 7a (Promulgation of Zen as a defense of the nation). In Furuta Shokin, Nihon no Zen goroku Eisai. And
in Ichikawa Hakugen 1) B $2 , Iriya Yoshitaka AX & cs and Yanagida Seizan #4? ® A ws eds. Chiisei Zenkano shiso P #. A¥. Ke a B, 4. (The thought of medieval Japanese Zen masters). Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1972.
— “Kissa yojoki? 0% AP #. Fe, (Enhancement of life through the drinking of tea). In Furuta Shokin, Nihon no Zen goroku 1, Eisai At-9
4¥ 2h ea i ya ap (The records of Japanese Zen masters 1, Eisai). Tokyo, Kodansha, 1977.
Nagahara Keiji x e LA = . Minamoto Yoritomo AR. $B iy (The warrior Minamoto Yoritomo). Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1958.
—— Nihon hdken seiritsu kateinokenkyu @ RE Ff SE XM A G2 Q ff 3% (Studies in the formation of Japanese feudalism). Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1961.
348 Bibliography —— ‘‘Nanbokucho nairan’’ ¢) 3k. A A) 4bL (The civil wars between the Northern and Southern courts), in Koza Nihon rekishi 6, Chisei 2. Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1963.
——, et. al., eds. Chitsei-shi handobukku POE Berek TV y7 (A handbook for medieval historical studies). Tokyo, Kondo Shuppansha, 1973.
___ “Shdensei kaitai katei ni okeru nanbokuché nairanki no ichi” Fe F) $'
FF BAZ TTR AFM Owe
(The place of the Northern and Southern court civil war period in the process of shen dissolution), in Nihon chiusei shakai kozo no kenkyu. Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1976.
Nakamura Hajime Y F#J w — . “Zen niokeru seisan to kinrd no mondai”
(3 3 ay a x Et Fo a ah (The problem
of labor and production in Zen), Zen bunka 2:27-35 (September 1955). —— Muromachi Bukkyo . BT fun Ax (Muromachi Buddhism), in Ajia Bukkyo-shi—Nihon hen, 6. Tokyo, Kosei Shuppansha, 1972.
——, et. al, eds. Kamakura Bukkyo, 1-3 re om 4x BX (Kamakura Bud-
dhism), in Ajia Bukkyo-shi—Nihon hen, vols. 3-6 TTP ARMS
A #~ te . Tokyo, Kosei Shuppansha, 1972 .
Nakazawa Benjiro W SRF BP . Nihon beika hendo-shi 8 ~ y et a GK. (A history of the fluctuations in Japanese rice prices). Tokyo, Meibundo, 1933.
Nanzenjit monjo ¥) *2 % KE (Documents relating to Nanzenji). Compiled by Sakurai Kageo ye # ¥ BE. = and Fujii Manabu is #
4 . 3 vols. Kyoto, Nanzenji, 1972. ,
Nishimura, Eshin. Unsui: A Diary of Zen Monastic Life. Ed. Bardwell L. Smith. Honolulu, University of Hawaii Press, 1973.
Nishioka Toranosuke & [%| BR, 2 ay . “Daitokuji-ryo Kii no kuni
Takaie-no-sho” K 4% x 44 4a? &] q ; qx (Daitokuji’s ' Takaie-no-sho. in Kii province), Rekishigaku kenkyii 6.9:2-21 (1936).
—— ‘“Chusei ni okeru ichi shoen no shocho”’ v 41> > 173 Fe. fe 9 7 & (The vicissitudes of a medieval shoen), in Nishioka, Shden-shi no
kenkyu i. (Z) L929 of es , vol. 1. Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1953.
—— ,ed. Nihon shoen ezu shisei A A Te) FD yee Ji. (Collection of maps of Japanese shoen). Tokyo, Tokyodo Shuppan, 1976.
—— “Shugo daimyo rydka no jiryd shoen” BK AAR 2
F aS qe. ) (Temple-held shoen within the shugo daimyo domain),
in Hokensei to shihonsei EF 32. P| e ¥ - + . Tokyo, Yuhikaku, 1956.
Bibliography | 349 Nishitani Keiji db A PE 4, et. al. Koza Zen Zh. AE 3 (Essays on Zen). 7 vols. Tokyo, Chikuma Shobo, 1968. Nukariya, Kaiten. The Religion of the Samurai. London, Luzac, 1913.
Nuki Tatsuto $3 BA . “Engakuji-ry6 ni tsuite’ FY ry 4 AR 2*+?t (On Engakuji domains), in Toyo daigaku kiyo 11:17-29 (1957). ——, et.al. Kenchdji 32 & 4 (The monastery of Kenchdji). Kamakura,
Daihonzan Kench@ji, 1973. |
Ogawa Makoto 7]s "| 4%. Hosokawa Yoriyuki #2 ") (7 (The warrior Hosokawa Yoriyuki). Tokyo, Yoshikawa Kobunkan, 1972.
— Ogisu Junds 4X 4h ft. 38 ©. Nihon chiisei Zenshir-shi A R~ P 4¥ a Y (A history of medieval Japanese Zen). Tokyo, Mokujisha, 1965. Oishi Shinzaburo XK #@ re Zz BB , et. al. Nihon keizai-shi ron @ y~ FE. Ar LY tm (Essays in Japanese economic history). Tokyo, Ochanomizu Shobé, 1967.
Okubo Désha X AK BH . Dogen Zenji-den no kenkyu xb % AE bP IAD OF ye (A study of Dogen’s biography). Tokyo, Chikuma Shobo, 1966.
Okura Seishin Bunka Kenkyijo XK. @ Fh AP Lit HRW pir Nihon shiso-shi bunken gedai_ ® I~ B. 4B XK BK 82. B32) (Explanatory bibliography of materials relating to Japanese intellectual history). Tokyo, Kadokawa Shoten, 1965.
Ono Tatsunosuke X $F Ww zB . Nichiren @ € (Nichiren). Tokyo, Yoshikawa Kobunkan, 1958.
Ota Hirotaro KK ® tf AK BP Chissei no kenchiku ¥ #29 3% s (Medieval Japanese architecture). Tokyo, Shokokusha, 1957.
——, Matsushita Ryusho (Takaaki) Zn F Pe- e. , and Tanaka Seidai
@ Y £.X_ eds. Zendera to sekitei 4 tA kk (Zen temples and stone gardens). Genshoku Nihon no bijutsu, 10 Rp. @, B ys
2 RAT — . Tokyo, Shogakkan, 1967.
—— Nihon kenchiku-shi josetsu A x Le B XY bad 3% . Tokyo, Shokokusha, 1947.
Oyabu Masaya KX # 3 Hy. “Genchd no shakys seisaku” 7 Ph 2 EA A EK -. (The religious policies of the Yuan dynasty), Rekishi kyoiku 9.7:36-42 (July 1961).
Oyama KyGdhei XK1£€or a . (A “Owari no kuni ni tsuite”’in Bjko § @o study ofTomita-no-sho Tomita-no-sho Owari province), Oikonomika 1.1:110-133 (April 1964).
350 Bibliography —— Kamakura bakufu So z R Ay (The Kamakura bakufu), Nihon no rekishi, 9. Tokyo, Shogakkan, 1974. Prip-Mdller, Johannes. Chinese Buddhist Monasteries. London, Oxford University Press, 1937.
Reischauer, Edwin O., trans. Ennin’s Diary: The Record of a Pilgrimage to China in Search of the Law. New York, The Ronald Press, 1955. — Ennin’s Travels in T’ang China. New York, The Ronald Press, 1955.
Reinan Shujo Ag 8) % ee. . Nihon tojo rentoroku B ZS fe)
Zensho, vol. 71 ,
T% 6. 4% (Records of Japanese Soto school monks). Dai-Nihon Bukkyo Renondeau, G. “Histoire des Moines Guerriers du Japon,”’ Bibliotheque de l’In-
stitute des Hautes Etudes Chinoises, Mélanges 9:159-344 (1957). Rosenfield, John M. “The Unity of the Three Creeds: A Theme in Japanese Ink Painting of the Fifteenth Century.” In Hall and Toyoda eds. Japan in the Muromachi Age. University of California Press, 1977.
Ryakoku Daigaku Bukkyogaku Kenkyiishitsu JE Te- K 4 4 BR #
at % Zed. Bukkyogaku kankei zasshi ronbun bunrui mokuroku
jn bh PA te FE TE omy ORR OB GR A classified catalogue of journal articles relating to the study of Buddhism). Kyoto, Nagata Bunshodo, 1971.
Sakugen Sharys BF % Bl BR —-Boshinyiiminki Tk, FX 94 FW
,a of a voyage to Ming China). Zoku shiseki shiran, 1 fs B #
Sakurai Kageo (Keiyi) ra. # ¥ FE. Nanzenji-shi # #& a (A history of Nanzenji). Kyoto, Daihonzan Nanzenji, 1940. Sanford, James H. “Itkkyu Sojun: A Zen Monk of Fifteenth Century Japan.” PhD dissertation, Harvard University, 1972.
Sasaki Ginya 74 @ AL $B. 9. Chiisei shohin ryutsi-shinokenkyu FE
1B) ob. AP 9 ai te (Studies in medieval commodity circulation). Tokyo, Hosei Daigaku Shuppan-kyoku, 1972.
—— Muromachi bakufu g py J (The Muromachi bakufu), Nihon no rekishi, 13. Tokyo, Shogakkan, 1975. Sato, Elizabeth. ‘“‘The Early Development of the Shoen,” in Hall and Mass, eds., Medieval Japan: Essays in Institutional History. New Haven, Yale University Press, 1974.
Bibliography — 351 Sato Kazuhiko 44 rem Fo % . Nanbokucho nairan # 3k. ¥F QL (The civil wars between the Northern and Southern courts). Nihon no rekishi, 9. Tokyo, Shogakkan, 1974.
Sato Shin’ichi 4E. ie ge | “Shugo ryokoku-sei no tenkai’”’
F FS & 44 BF 0 Bw (The development of the shugo domain system), in Toyoda Takeshi 4 oS ,ed., Chiseishakai FY & He Tokyo, Asakura Shoten, 1954, —— “Muromachi bakufu kaisoki no kansei taiker? B By R Ay Fe] | 44
27 B*] KA (The administrative structure of the early Muromachi bakufu), in Ishimoda Sho % - ® ik and Sato Shin’ichi, eds.,
Chiisei no hd tokokka PFU Ae @ : . Tokyo, Tokyo Daigaku Shuppankai, 1960. —— et al. Koza Nihon rekishi, Chisei 3. Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1963.
—— Nanbokucho no doran i) de GR 9 §) BL (The disturbances between the Northern and Southern courts), Nihon no rekishi, 9. Tokyo, Chuo Koronsha, 1965.
—— Kamakura bakufu shugo seido no kenkyiu Es z % At Ff i oR Q BA % (The shugo system of the Kamakura bakufu). Tokyo, Tokyo Daigaku Shuppankai, 1971.
—— and Ikeuchi Yoshisuke 38) 7 RK t , comps. Chisei hosei shiryoshu
yo > % EY ‘5 (Collection of documents relating to — medieval legal institutions). 2 vols. Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1957.
SatoTatsugen 4%. Ae ie %—.. “Hokuso sorin no keizai seikatsu” , ree 79 & my ob (The economic life of Ch’an monasteries in the Northern Sung dynasty), Komazawa daigaku Bukkyogakubu kiyo 25:14-28 (1967).
Sekiguchi Kinya RA 2 IK % . Kamakura no chasei kenchiku he Zz
27 Pe. x e (The architecture of medieval Kamakura). Kanagawa-ken, Kyoiku linkai, 1967.
Sekiguchi Shindai Rf 2 g K . Daruma no kenkyu se oo 2 oi a (A study of Bodhidharma). Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1967. :
— Tendai shikan no kenkyu KK. XK Gh.9 ff Su (A study of Tendai Buddhist Shikan meditation). Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1969.
Sekino Tei BE SF 2] . Shina no kenchiku to geijutsu R Apo a. Bg
1938. ,
te Z (Chinese architecture and arts). Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten,
Shiina Hiroo ##. 4 EAH. . “Shotd Zensha no ritsu’in kyoju ni tsuite”
#n 4¥ ho TF P4 BAR at (On the residence of early
352 Bibliography T’ang dynasty Ch’an devotees in Li School monasteries), Indogaku Bukkydgaku kenkyit 17.2:325-327 (1969).
—— “Higashiyama homon keisei no haikei” x vr Kh PY K *G ¥ (The background to the formation of the community at Tungshan), Komazawa shukyogaku kenkyu, no. 12. Shimizu, Yoshiaki, and Carolyn Wheelwright, eds. Japanese Ink Paintings from American Collections: The Muromachi Period. Princeton, The Art Museum, Princeton University, 1976.
Shinchi Kakushin A> 30) %, ‘>° . Hottd kokushi zazengi i 7t. Bl bf 'e 48 1 (Hotto Kokushi’s instructions for zazen). Dai-Nihon Bukkyo Zensho, vol. 96
Shingyo Norikazu My 47 $2, — _ Ikkd ikki no kiso kozd — ©) — 38 9 & Ee Th i (The basic structure of the Ikko uprisings). Tokyo, Yoshikawa Kobunkan, 1975.
Shun’oku Myocha Fg Ie 2 Fs. Musd Kokushi nenpu 7 % Ez) Bip F a (A chronology for the life of Muso Kokushi). Kyoto, Tenrytji, c. 1700.
Solomon, Michael. “Rennyo and the Rise of Honganji in Muromachi Japan.” PhD dissertation, Columbia University, 1972. Steenstrup, Carl T. Hojo Shigetoki (1198-1261) and his Role in the History of Political and Ethical Ideas in Japan. London, Curzon Press, 1979.
Sugimoto Hisao ry 7, 0) kB ©. Chissei no jinja to sharyo FEA AY Fhe fe. AY (Medieval shrines and shrine domain). Tokyo, Yoshikawa
Kobunkan, 1959. ;
—— Kikuchi-shi sandai % 12 Ky 24% (Three generations of the Kikuchi family). Tokyo, Yoshikawa Kobunkan, 1966. Suzuki, Daisetsu Teitaro. The Training of the Zen Buddhist Monk. Kyoto, Eastern Buddhist Society, 1934. —— Zen and Japanese Culture. New York, Pantheon, 1959,
Suzuki Taisan #2 RE vw —s. Zenshu no chiho hatten 4p z 4 su R RE (The provincial diffusion of the Zen schools). Kyoto, Unebi Shobo, 1942.
—— “Soto Zen no gufu to sono gegosha”’ 4 za) 48 2) 9% # CAPM
J} 4] %, (The diffusion of Soto Zen and its patrons), in Itd Tasaburo 4Ff x Ig =z BP , ed., Kokumin seikatsu-shi kenkyu B) B, & st Y i Bf, . 5 vols. Tokyo, Yoshikawa Kobunkan, 1957-1962.
—— “Chiho jiin no seiritsu to tenkai” $F + P29 x Bt & Pe] (The establishment and growth of provincial monasteries), Chihd-shi kenkyu 14.4:6-8 (August 1964).
Bibliography 353 Tachibana, Kosen. “‘The Codes of Chosokabe Motochika and the Economy of Buddhist Temples in His Day,” Indogaku Bukkyogaku kenkyu 21.1:470 (December 1972).
Taga Munehaya 4y "5 ee ¥ . Eisai x de (The monk Eisai). Tokyo, Yoshikawa Kobunkan, 1965.
=2a
Taiheiki K F¢O (Chronicle of great peace). Nihon koten bungaku
taikei 8 ya > a z KR i , vols. 34-36. Ed. Gotd Tanji it ie. a and Kamada Kisaburo & O B 2. Bp . Tokyo,
Iwanami Shoten, 1973.
Takagi Yutaka ® RK ¥ _Nichiren to sono montei @ & & 49 PY Fa (Nichiren and his followers). Tokyo, Kobundo, 1965.
Takahashi Rytizo 6) +8. PE =. “Rinzaishii kanji no seido” E& a7 aS ‘" 4 a 4) KH (The system of official Zen monasteries in the Rinzai Zen school), Kokushigaku 23:9-43; 24:13-30 (May and October 1935).
Takayanagi Mitsutoshi a Hop xX 4 . Ashikaga Takauji *€_4' § KR (The warrior Ashikaga Takauji). Tokyo, Shunjusha, 1966.
~ Takenuki Gensho "T =a Io AR . “Rinka ni okeru kyodan keiei ni tsuite”
A- Freé 73 BX Ea he 4 i> Dw?td (Sectarian organization in the Rinka group of Zen monasteries), Bukkyo shigaku 15.2:105-143 (July 1971).
— ‘“Zenshii kyddan un’ei to nassho” 4¥. K 4X B 7 ar ae as Pl(The nassho office and the management of the Zen school), Indogaku Bukkyogaku kenkyui 23.2:908-911 (March 1975).
Takeshima Takuichi /1’T ZB 8. - . Eizo hoshiki no kenkyu 1-3 Cb RK OF te (A study of the Ying-tsao Fa-shih manual of archi-
tecture). Tokyo, Chuko Bijutsu, 1972. |
Takeuchi Michio "7 7) bth «soto kyddan no seiritsu’”’ 4 fa) aa Aon (The formation of the Soto school of Zen), Rekishi kyoiku 10.6:44-51 (June 1962). —— Dogen a JQ (Dodgen). Tokyo, Yoshitawa Kobunkan, 1962.
Takeuchi Rizo T A £2 2. Jiryd shden no kenkya 4 AB iz. fi) 2D OF % (Studies of Temple shoen). Kyoto, Unebi Shobo, 1942. —— Nihon jodai jiin keizai-shino kenkyu ® A-E 4X, = FZ. 4%. Ar P.
2 of %& (The economic history of ancient Japanese temples).
| Tokyo, Ookayama Shoten, 1934. , Tamamura Takeji ¥, Ff 77 = . “Inryoken oyobi inrydshoku-ko”
ze A a Far EB ag Fe F (Thoughts on the Inryoken and the Inry6 office), Rekishi chiri 75.4:51-67; 5:48-67; 6:53-72 (1940). Also included in Tamamura, Nihon Zenshu-shi ronshu 1, pp. 103-196.
354 Bibliography —— “Gozan sorin no tatchi nitsuite” 2. 34 x FR~9 LE ER I" 2~% (On the sub-temples of the gozan monasteries), Rekishi chiri 76, nos. 5 and 6 (1940). Also included in Tamamura, Nihon Zenshiu-shi ronshu 1, pp. 197-243.
—— “Ashikaga Yoshimochi no Zenshu shinko ni tsuite” LF" ke #3 2
4¥ FBI ret (Ashikaga Yoshimochi’s devotion to Zen), Zengaku kenkyu 42:20-43 (March 1951).
—— Gozan bungaku 2. WX 4 (The literature of the Five Mountains). Tokyo, Shibundo, 1955. —— Muso Kokushi 5 a %. & BP (Muso, the national master). Kyoto, Heirakuji Shoten, 1958. —— ‘‘Ashikaga Tadayoshi Zenshi shinko no seikaku ni tsuite”’ it. #' t de
4B 2 4e 17 9 DS a OO (The character of Ashikaga Tadayoshi’s devotion to Zen), Bukkyo shigaku 7.3:1-22 (October 1958).
—— “Rinzaishi kyodan no seiritsu” Bea a OR RL lo HK az (The establishment of the Rinzai school organization), Rekishi kyoiku 10.6:3743 (June 1962).
—— “Gozan sorin no jipp6 jiiji seido ni tsuite” 2. 0 z TF 9 4
EF] Misc err (The system of open appointment of abbots in gozan Zen monasteries), Nihon Zenshi-shi ronshii 1, 249-279.
—— and Inoue Zenjo # pm 3 2 Zz, Engakuji-shi FY ei ¥ (A history of Engakuji). Tokyo, Shunjiisha, 1964.
—— “Zenshi no hatten’’ RB. 2 9K, B (The growth of the Zen schools), in Koza Nihon rekishi, Chusei 3. Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1963.
— “Zen” 48 (Zen), in Chugoku bunka sosho 10 Y BX it E ¢ Nihon bunka to Chugoku 4 AS XA & PE) | Bd. Bitd Masahide
R, ie EK. Tokyo, Taishikan, 1968. —— Nihon Zenshi-shi ronsha © y= 4% RY tH e (Essays on the history of Zen in Japan). Tokyo, Shibunkaku, 1976.
Tamamuro Fumio ¥. SX . “Bakuhan ryOshu no shukyo tosei’’ % Xe a5 £9 # aX Hi) #'| (The control of religion under the Bakuhan system), in Tamamuro Fumio and Miyata Noboru, Shomin shinko no genso. Tokyo, Mainichi Shinbunsha, 1977.
—— Shinbutsu bunri A Aix A oe (The separation of Shinto and Buddhism). Tokyo, Kyoikusha 1977.
Tamamuro Taijo # B oH Fx; . “Watakushi no Zenshi-kan” 4a 9 4®. KR #8, (My view of Zen Buddhism), Daihdrin 30.1:46-51 (January 1963).
Bibliography 355 — Soshiki Bukkyo 5 B\4A4#K = (Buddhism and funeral practices). Tokyo, Daihorinkaku, 1964.
Tamura Encho ® ys FYE | Honen 249K (The monk Honen). Tokyo, Yoshikawa Kobunkan, 1959. Te-hui {&, 1. . Ch’ih-hsiu Pai-chang ch’ing-kuei (Chokushi hyakujo shingi)
$7) (4% 4x Ay #8, (Imperial compilation of the pure regulations of Pai-chang). Dai-Nihon zoku zokyo 2-16-3 KX BA DIK
Terada Toru 4 # s& and Mizuno Yaoko 7K $F ap 4@. 4 , eds. Dogen # HH (Dogen). 2 vols. Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1972. Thompson, Laurence G. Studies in Chinese Religion: A Comprehensive and Classified Bibliography of Publications in English, French, and German Through 1970. California, Dickenson Publishing Company, 1976.
Tofukuji-shi pa 4% ZK (Chronicles of Tofukuji). Ed. Shiraishi Horya
8% F a. Kyoto, Daihonzan Tofukuji, 1930. Tokyo Daigaku Shiryo Hensanjo REX ‘4 RV Et St ys AT
comp. Daitokuji monjo K @, =F x z (Documents relating to
Shuppankai, 1971. }
Daitokuji). Dai-Nihon komonjo, Iewake 17. 10 vols. Tokyo, Tokyo Daigaku __
—— Tojukuji monjo & 2 x XE (Documents relating to Tofukuji).
Dai-Nihon komonjo, lewake 20. XK BRM F4 a DT 3vols. Tokyo, 1959.
Toyoda Takeshi g pm Dy . Nihon shitkyo seido shi no kenkyii AAR | REF] EYXo aff 6) (A history of religious organization in Japan). Tokyo, Koseikaku, 1938.
—— “Genko tobaku no shoseiryoku ni tsuite’ 7 94 27 % oy) 24 i 7) I~ > v>t = (The various forces involved in the overthrow of the Kamakura bakufu), Bunka 31.1:61-90 (July 1967).
——., ed. Koyasan-ryo shoen no shihai to kozo ra S$ 4B Xe (E) 2 ¥ Boe 7h x6 = SS (The control and structure of shoen belonging to Mt. Koya). Tokyo, Gannando, 1977.
—— (Zotei) Chusei Nihon shogyo-shi no kenkyu (t% a ) yt B Ie-B) Ze
DQ AA 5 (A history of commercial activity in medieval Japan). Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1957. —— and Hiroshi Sugiyama. ‘‘The Growth of Commerce and the Trades.” In Hall and Toyoda, eds., Japan in the Muromachi Age. University of California Press, 1977.
Tsan-ning x S , et. al. Sung kao-seng-chuan (Sokosoden) ye z 4% ha (The Sung edition of the biographies of eminent monks). Taisho shinshu daizokyo, vol. 50.
356 Bibliography Tse-shan I-hsien 7% wr A PX, . Ch’an-lin pei-yung ch’ing-kuei (Zenrin biyo shingi) we TK-1% FA i #8; (Pure regulations for Ch’an monasteries). Dai-Nihon zoku-zokyo 2-17-1.
Tsuji Zennosuke zt z 2 By “Ashikaga Takauji no shinko” EF $ A, DAE 4eP = (Ashikaga Takauji’s religious interests), Shigaku zasshi, September 1916.
—— Nihon Bukkyo-shi ®@ KA n AXP (A history of Japanese Buddhism). 10 vols. Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1944-1970.
Tsukamoto Manabu 4K AX ¥ and AraiKikuo #ff # &. A_%®
A , a , ; i, -—
Aichi-ken no rekishi va Keb 2 a (A history of Aichi pre-
1972. ,
fecture). Tokyo, Yamakawa Shuppansha, 1972.
Tsung-tse sf ER , comp. Ch’an-yuan ch’ing-kuei (Zen’on shingi) We. ye AA #2, (Pure regulations for Ch’an monasteries). Dai-Nihon zoku zokyd, 2-16-5. See also, Yakuchii zen’on shingi @K. SE A® Feo 74 48, . Ed. Kagamishima Genryu Se, Z Fo PE, et. al. Tokyo, Sotdsha Shimuch6,
Tsunoda, Ryusaku, Wm. Theodore de Bary, and Donald Keene, comps. Sources of Japanese Tradition, 1. New York, Columbia University Press, 1964. Twitchett, Denis C. “Monastic Estates in T’ang China.”’ Asia Major. New Series 5:123-146 (1956). —— “The Monasteries and China’s Economy in Medieval Times,” Bulletin of the School of Oriental and African Studies 19.3:526-549 (1957).
Ui Hakuju F ai 1aZ . Zenshi-shi kenkyu AR ¥ Ff oN (Studies in the history of Zen). Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1939.
—— Dai-ni Zenshu-shi kenkyu rf = 3 m YO %, (Further studies in the history of Zen). Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1942.
— Bukkyo shisd kenkyn A»~ RX QB. 48. FF Ro (Studies in Buddhist thought). Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1942.
Umeda Yoshihiko #@- ® R ty . Nihon shikysd seido shi 4 x EA a P] Ee P (A history of religious organization in Japan). Kyoto, Hyakkaen, 1962.
Unsen Taikyoku 4 & XK 4® . Hekizan nichiroku 4 Uv A B% (The azure mountain records). In Kondé Heijo +f. is. #RITBS ed. Zoku shiseki shiiran 3. Kyoto, Rinsen Shoten, 1967. Ury, Marian. Poems of the Five Mountains: An Introduction to the Literature of the Zen Monasteries. Tokyo, Mushinsha, 1977.
Usui Nobuyoshi £3 # AZ s . Ashikaga Yoshimitsu JEL $'| &e 7 oy
Bibliography 357 (The shogun Ashikaga Yoshimitsu), Tokyo, Yoshikawa Kobunkan, 1960.
Uwayokote Masataka 4h F Ht. Be . Hojo Yasutoki ILA RH (The regent Hojo Yasutoki). Tokyo, Yoshikawa Kobunkan, 1958. Van de Wetering, Janwillem. The Empty Mirror. Boston, Houghton Mifflin, 1976. Varley, H. Paul. The Onin War. New York, Columbia University Press, 1967. —— Imperial Restoration in Medieval Japan. New York, Columbia University Press, 1971. —— Japanese Culture. New York, Praeger, 1973. —— “Ashikaga Yoshimitsu and the World of Kitayama: Social Change and Shogunal Patronage in Early Muromachi Japan,” in Hall and Toyoda, eds., Japan in the Muromachi Age. University of California Press, 1977. Vessie, Patricia A. Zen Buddhism: A Bibliography of Books and Articles in English 1892-1975. Ann Arbor, University Microfilms International, 1976. Waddell, Norman and Masao Abe, trans. ‘“Dogen’s Bendowa,” The Eastern Buddhist 4.1:148 (May 1971). ——, trans. “Dogen’s Fukan zazengi and Shobogenzo zazengi,” The Eastern
Buddhist 6.2:115-128 (October 1973).
Wakita Haruko WH) B i 5 . Nihon chisei shogyo hattatsu-shi no ken-
kyu ARCH eH VO (Studies in the
development of Japanese medieval commerce). Tokyo, Ochanomizu Shobo, 1969. —— “Towards a Wider Perspective on Medieval Commerce,” Journal of Japanese Studies 1.2:321-345 (Spring 1975).
Wakita Osamu Ay, ® 45 . “Jinaimachi no k6z6o to tenkai,” 4 de 4B. Ze B Pa (The structure and transformation of temple towns), Shirin 41.1:1-24 (1958). Waley, Arthur, trans. The Travels of an Alchemist. London, Routledge, 1931.
Washio Junkei a Ay "iB BX. Kamakura bushi to Zen BR BA z 3 2 (Kamakura warriors and Zen). Tokyo, Nihon Gakujutsu Fukytkai, 1935.
Wei-mien 4%. @3 , comp. Chiao-ting ch’ing-kuei (Kojo shingi) Ase Hh £8, (Wei-mien’s pure regulations), Dai-Nihon zoku zokyo, 2-17-1. A a A~
HE BE
Weinstein, Stanley. ““Rennyo and the Shinsht Revival,” in Hall and Toyoda, eds., Japan in the Muromachi Age. University of California Press, 1977.
358 Bibliography —— ‘Imperial Patronage in the Formation of T’ang Buddhism,” in Arthur F. Wright and Dennis Twitchett eds., Perspectives on the T’ang. New Haven,
Yale University Press, 1973. ,
Welch, Holmes. The Practice of Chinese Buddhism. Cambridge, Harvard University Press, 1967.
Wu-liang Tsung-shou 5B. a me = , comp. Ju-chung fih-yung ch’ing-kuei
(Nyusshii nichiyd shingi) #2 BA 2H XR, (Introductory regulations for daily life in the Ch’an community). Dai-Nihon zoku zokyo, 2-16-5. Also in Kokuyaku Zenshii sdsho, series 2, vol. 5.
Yamamoto Seiki UA A #421. “Kita joshu ni okeru Soto Zen no denpa
nitsuite’? 20 Ew] ~- B73 4 Fe) RR 9 La, i DHT ( The diffusion of Soto Zen in northern Kozuke province), in Kasahara
Kazuo, ed., Nihon ni okeru seiji to shukyo A y revs Mwe La BX . Tokyo, Yoshikawa Kobunkan, 1974. Yamamura, Kozo. ‘“The Development of the Za in Medieval Japan,” Business History Review 47.4:438-465 (Winter 1973). Yampolsky, Philip. The Platform Sutra of the Sixth Patriarch. New York, Columbia University Press, 1967. —— The Zen Master Hakuin. New York, Columbia University Press, 1971. —— and Toshihide Akamatsu. ‘“‘Muromachi Zen and the Gozan System,” in Hall and Toyoda, eds., Japan in the Muromachi Age. University of California Press, 1977.
Yanagida Seizan Kup 2] We J . Rinzai no kafu Kia ee 4 Ke , (The style of Rinzai Zen), Tokyo, Chikuma Shobo, 1967.
— Shoki zenshii-shi shisho no kenkyu 47) £A ia 4 LA a vyto Ait % (Studies in the early historical materials relating to the history of the Ch’an School). Kyoto, Hozokan, 1967,
—— “Chiigoku Zenshi-shi” ¥ E\ FB. 2 y (Ahistory of the Ch’an Schools in China), in Nishitani Keiji et al., eds., Koza Zen 3. Tokyo, Chikuma Shobo, 1968.
—— Daruma no goroku 3 ie Ce F< 4 (The records of Bodhidharma). Zen no goroku 1. Tokyo, Chikuma Shobo, 1969.
—_— “Bisal to Kozen sokokuron no kadai’”’ , an t re ia 2 Bs I 23 Fa, ) ZR AR (Eisai and the Agenda of the Kozen Gokokuron), in Ichikawa
Hakugen )] @ §& ___, Iriya Yoshitaka ~ RK & cA , and Yanagida Seizan, eds., Chiusei Zenka no shiso. FP tL 4® Ka ¥> #8. Tokyo, Iwanami Shoten, 1972.
Bibliography 359 —— and Umehara Takeshi 4&- 7 FAY. Muno tankyu JS. % 1 # (The search for emptiness). Bukkyo no shiso7 jn AL) By F8. Tokyo, Kadokawa Shoten, 1969. Yang, Lien-sheng. ‘Buddhist Monasteries and Four Money-Raising Institutions in Chinese History,” Harvard Journal of Asiatic Studies 13:174-191 (1950).
Yasuda Motohisa 3% @ 4) R _. Hojo Yoshitoki it Be Be RE (The regent Hojo Yoshitoki). Tokyo, Yoshikawa Kobunkan, 1961.
—, ed. Shoen oh Gohé Myoo 2 x& 9 Z Harima t& € goka (koka) eB Hatakeyama Yoshitsuna gokenin tip He A 2, v4 Be Z1h) Gokoku shobogi Hatano Yoshishige
3 WEAR Re
Gokurakuji ie ae Hatsukura-no-sho 27 Be Fr
goroku #%& 4 hatts 7K ¥
gosaie Mie FG e Hayashi mura tH AT
goso 48 SH Heian _ Gottan Funei 1, GE Heijo-ky6 F OK Th gozan (gosan) B. vy Hekizan nichiroku
gozan bungaku LAKE gy wo Be Gozan jissatsu zu Hida #f¥, £2
BwWtTé4i Hie Taisha 9 & RK HE gozanban B.vv kK Hieizan rC BR gozoku %. WE Higashiyama < by Gucht Shtkyi ae so | Qe Higashiyama Sanso
gyakuhan zazen be ETE K Dy da ir
gyoji 47 # hijiri 92
Gyoyu 47 B hikan 4 E
hikitsukegata 4 | yA Hino Arinori B FF AR BX
Hai-yun 3H g hinpotsu a Hp Hakudd Boni #824 Es Hitachi % BE Hakuin Ekaku § AS. ya Hizen RE FI
Hakusan 9 wv ho 4A
Glossary 367 © ho-shih oe) ay Hosokawa Yoriyuki Hoan-ha #@& Je sik KO 1] 42 x hobetsu-sen Ph 3] BX Hosso 3K #8
Hodoji e ve. 5 Hottd Kokushi 2% v%& BP
hogo %& 4 Hotto Kokushi zazengi
hojo FX AE Bl bh EAR 18, hojo anja F LATA hou-t’ang shou-tso
Hdj5 Masako ICR KF ee OE
Hojé Sadatoki 3-ME BEF hdza HE Hojo Takatoki 3c 1 BH Hozan hennen ryakuki Hojo Tokimune HAE TR ¥ Ly ba F RA Ze Hojo Tokiyori Fa Be $h Hsi-ch’an-yuan ¥& Fe pz,
Hojo Yasutoki 1 HR hsi-t’ang & 4
Hojo Yoshitoki 30 4% By BH hsi-ts'ang & jx
Hokke 3& EA hsiao-ts’an 7). x
Honen AA hsieh-yuan-chu 9B PZ, 5a Honganji ARR hsing-che 4T #
honke RR Hsing-ch’ian 47 4
honke shiki KR TK Hsing-t’ang-hsien 47 a Naa honrai no menboku Hsu-an Huai-ch’ang
KX 9 A Ke ERK
honzon AG hsuan-ming @ BH
Hori 2 hua-chu 4G €.
Horinji ¥ tA Hua-yen Ee
Hosenji a Huan-chu-an &) 4%. J¥ Hosokawa Katsumoto Huan-chu-an ch’ing-kuei
be] BR Hs | 47 AZ JB 7A RR
Hosokawa Mochiyuki Huang-lung p’ai $ He HK
4p "] 2 Zz Hui-neng 2. SE
Hosokawa Takakuni Hui-shen X. Pa
iB a a a Hui-tsung 4% =
368 Glossary Hui-yun A. z imina 8
Hung-chien 94 y 2 inari kumon & PK AX Hung-chih Cheng-chueh inka tP ¥
K AY nae ino IE AP
Hung-jen 44 72° Inryoken ie ye BT Hupei 369 +b Inryoken nichiroku
Hydgo K ie WK FF A SK
hyojoshu SFR RK inryOshoku #% oR HR,
Hylga fe) Ippen — Fa Ise 4 FS
I-k’ung ¥ oa Ise Jingti 1F &. 7? I-shan I-ning — 4 — B Ishida % B I shuso fe oO Ishikawa 7% "| ibu jisha (ehatsu-jisha) Ishin Siden 2% "> # 1g
KK SHAF ¥ Issan Ichinei — dh — 2
ichien fuyu — Gl FRR Iwashimizu Hachiman bugyo
Ichijo Kanera — 1 a Bz. a | TRUS 1% ENF |
Idaten s EK K Iwashimizu Hachimangu
Iga +P AKAN E lio Sadayuki @K , B 4 Izumi +e 2
ikai ve EH Izumo hk ¥ Ikai gojo rk PB Ee
Ikedera-no-sho 2. ie jago at zB
ikki — 8 jie IRR Ikkd-ikki — fo) —F¥ jijo AB AK Ikkdshi — 1) FR jika 44
Ikkyt Sdjun — KR FY jika gyoji F KAT ¥
Imagawa Norikuni XB jikido * 2 Imagawa RyOdshun 4") 7 7% jiko 15
Imamiyasha 4% He Jikusen Bonsen 7 Aan A (e Imamura Fukumanji 7#f Teh s Jimyo’in 7 9A Re
Glossary 369 jinaimachi 3 PY BT Ju-chung jih-yung ch’ing-kuei
Jingoji 7H NX 8B me #E,
jinn 3 BB ju-shih ~ & Jinnd shotoki juen ~
%$we 8 XE HK 3B Jufukuji & 7% F
jippo juji 1H 1B. FF juji 4ELFF
jippo satsu + F F'] jukai 42.%
jirigyd B 4947 jukkys +*% jiryo x AG Juko’in HR X Pz jisha 15 % jushn yodoki THB WIS
jishi oF “Jaundoshiki? +B ¥ Jisht OF SR
jissatsu (jissetsu) +> $!] Kaga yo @
jito WER Kai 9 # jito shiki vt. 5B HK kairitsu PC 4F jito ukesho 3. 8B 5] P ty kaisan Fa] vA
jiyaku 4% kaisando PA AZ
Jizo Wh woe Kaji-no-shd ye 2O ir Jochiji 34 AP # kajishi na we. F
Jodo > + kajishi myoshu shiki
jodd KZ Ne #3 So + HK Jodo shinsht iF a ih R Kakua a pay
Jodoji ed LF Kamakura 2
joei shikimoku ¥ KA A , Kameyama joko EF wk Z
Joen +f fe) Kameyama go Se, vi HP jogakuji 3 | kami FP jokan xX. Fe Kamikatsura-no-sho 142 #£
Jomyoji FF kamikaze WP AL | Jorakuji ¥ ag 3 kan . Josetsu “ad Kanazawa @ if , Josht Jushin £8 01] 44 FZ- kanbun 7# X
J6zan Sozen dy AWG Kangiten $e BK
370 Glossary kan’in "a. Pt Keizan shingi * ud #8, kanji 7K F Keizan Jokin & we 5 2
kanmon “@ X ken fal Kannon $% 4 Kencho kokoku Zenji kannonds ¥274 Z Ek Re F
Kannon-kyo ZB. 4 Kenchoji xt £F
kanrei 4 4A Kenchoji kishiki kansen ‘& B& ERA KE A kansu Bg 4 Kenchoji sashizu
Kanto bugyo Bel BAT XE&F 15 D
Kanzan Egen fig] U4 gt Kenmu no shinsei
kad 46 4° EB 2 FA BL
karaburo ‘'f WE Kenmu shikimoku
karamono %& 44 x BAe karayo 4 LE Kenninji 4247 Kasama-ho *¥ fal 44 Kenshun % 4%
kasho = kesa(kasaya) 42 ¥ kasshiki (atsujiki) 08 Kian Soen XB, Aes wif Kasuga Jinja AL A FP HE. Kichizan Mincho 4 Js BA 9%
kata 4} t& Kii #0 47
Katsurayama Kagetomo Kikei Shinzui & By iA Be
(Gansho) Kikkawa & "|
Baa % ae (RR) Kikuchi % 3@
kawaya Jg kikyuryo % A KR
Kazusa #9. Kinai #B A
Kegon £ pe kinhin %& 47T Kegon-kyo EK kinsei #' Keichin &- 3% Kira & EB Keijo Shirin KR Lz Kissa yojoki °@ KAA BO Keitoku dentoroku Kitatamamura go
B46. ve AR ie MG +t Ie
Glossary 371 Kitayama 3t wv Konoe tt 487 kita #y FB Ko no Moronao 5 BP x] kitoso a he 1% Kosa go 7). 4. 968
koan AR Kosaka-no-sho 71s * #t. Kobayakawa +). ¥ ))] kosatsu (kassatsu, kosetsu) ¥ #'
kodo 4 Kosen Ingen & 4%? %
Kofukuji 3 I 4 Koshoji 182 % 4 Koga Michimune Koya-hijiri BF
RAK GA Koyasan & #F
- Kogakuji Tk 43 Kézanji 3 wW4
Kogimon’in BB & PF] f% Kozen gokokuron Kdgon tenno sige KR g GR HE. 25 OB) aq
Koho Kennichi ¥ we AB B Kozuke 1 ¥ Kojo shingi FE. 3% KR, Kuan-yin #8, ¥ Kokan Shiren ZB, al Bp rs kudokunari tf KB We
Kokawadera # 3] 4 k’u-ssu Tg. @)
Kokokuji Ra [| k’u-t’ou 1. 2B
koku % kuge 7% He
Kokubu & 7 Kuge nichiyo kufu ryakushu
Kokubunji Bl 7} Ep ARK Be
kokuga [4ET kuin Te. BY, kokujin BYA kujo (kojo) 2. pe
Kokuseiji 74 F Kujo Michiie JU 4 Re kokushi & BP Kujo Noriie 9u 4 FRR kokushi A Kikoku Meio % A. 3A €. Komyo tenno x, BH KZ Kumedadera 2 BD A
Komyoin shinki kumon 2% , af PZB KH, kumon % PY
Konchi’in 4A #2 f2, kung-an 75
kondo BY kura “&
Kongdbuji 4 A we Ruri ip. RZ.
372 Glossary Kuro Genzaemon Morishige menso-¥® 4
KREG BR Miidera ZRF
Kuroda % @ Mikawa 2 2
Kusuba sekisho #4 € 8A 7'T Mimasaka 2% +7
kyakuden SRS Min tsibun FRAP fi
kyo #E Minamoto Sanetomo 7 ¥ ¥ kyochi Ye, BX Minamoto Yoriie Fe #8 Ke kyogen 4d. 4 Minamoto Yoritomo 7 #R ¥A kyozen itchi 3X FR — BL Mincho 84 36
kyozo AE MX mindd aA Z
Ming-chi Ch’u-chiin
Lan-ch’i Tao-lung BR t& it AR
fel 3% bE Ming-chou BH 3€,
i 2 Minki Soshun 89 ?# 12 liao-chu ge x. Mino x 7B liao-shou-tso G JE. mirokudd 3 ¥n Z liao-tso ie AF Mito K P
Lin-chi I-hsuan B% Se Bt Mitsunari go = x pep
Ling-yin-ssu e RB. UA Mitsunari-no-sho 2. a
Li KE. Miura 2 7H Maeda }) B 2. & ¥
Miyoshi Nagayoshi
Maejima ql Z Mizoguchi B 7)
Mandokoro BC FI Moko shurai EA + 3 ya Mangen Shiban 1 bp Ag mon %&
Manjuji & 4 Es monchinjo fa] 7 Pr Mannenzan & 4F vA mondo WA Manpukuji ¥% #® 4 Monju 3c FR
mappo ys ZE, Monkan x €2.
masu Hf monzeki P4 Pi)
matsuji KF monzenmachi P 4 BY By
Glossary 373 Mori £. 4] Mydké Sdei 9A 2x RAR Mori-no-sho 4h ¥r Myokoji #7 ¥% 77
Morinaga shinno Myoshinji yw
Zi RBBE myoshu shiki 3 ¥ FK mou BR
Mu Ch’i BCR Nagashima ye z,
Muchi mondo eS ae nado WY
Mugaku Sogen J& 7 me. 7 Nan-fang-huo-te FX 4% Muin Genkai #& 7 Be Nan-shan ching tz’u pao en Mujaku Dochi 3% % vB %- kuang hsiao ch’an ssu
mujo sanmai FGF 2 OR Aun FER BAZ IZ 4 Mujti Ichien 94 142 — le] Nanpo Jomyo &) 2 #2 2f Mukan Gengo (Fumon) Nanto bugyo # ABARAT
Es iF ZANE (FF PY) Nanzenji 7%) 4B 4,
Mumon Ekai #% F I x, Pe] Nara & BR | Mumonkan 2% P4 fig nassho fi PH Munakata Jinja 5K (Rap RL Negoroji #. # Munakata-no-sho 4% He Negorosan #% # WH
munebetsu-sen F& %') nehan 3%. % Murata Juko Ff BAX nehandori 35¥. & Zz ‘4
Muromachi % BT nenbutsu “2 (ig musamon 3&4 PY nengu 4F®
Musashi 7A #6 nenpu 7F
Muso Soseki (Kokushi) Nichiren Q 54
cd es ae nien-sung 2S Fh
musomon $8 FB P4 Niimi-no-sho ff B, hr
Mutsu F& & Nijd Yoshizane = 1% ZF Myoan Eisai (Y6sai) Niki Yoshinao 4=— # &e EB
aR Ye; % ® ninku A_ ZL.
Myce Shonin ff Z. KA Ninnaji 4= 4a 3
Mydkakuji #¥ eS ninriki AF |
374 Glossary Ninsho Ry» YE Otsu A “. Nippo Soshun Ade ie $ Ouchi Yoshihiro X Be BL Nippon tojo rentoroku Owa Shirdzaemon
AR ele Bp ME Se fe, 4a w BP EBT PF
nisshitsu sanzen ~ B. RAE Owari %, 4k Nitta Yoshisada #f @ & BA Oyake-no-sho »)s & ¥r
no ee
Nonin #E Z- Pai-chang B ~ Noto #E # Pai-chang ch’ing-kuei Nyoi’an 2 E.. Je, BL RE Pei-shan 3 v4
Obaku ® Be Pei-shan ch’ing te ling yin ch’an Obaku shingi e eg ah ie, ssu Oda Nobunaga #X, BK HLF hs & RIFF Ogasawara Sadamune Pei-yung ch’ing-kuei
ABR RR thy A a #8.
Oki RS, WL Pi-shan ssu 2 da 3
Omi iff 2x4 Po’an p’ai BR FR, stk
Onin 7, I= P’u-chi ¥ y=
Onjoji HRA pu-ch’ing % % onshogata yer e un) P’u-sa ying-lo-ching
Oryt-ha e BE IK Se RE Bp 26-42 Osaka XK BR p’u-shuo se 2%, Oshio-no-sho x itt.
osho 4e 5) raima re Fal]
Otabumi K BX rakando He 7, Otaka Shigenari KB eK Rankei Doryt a 5% BE
Otomo Sadachika Reinan Shijo y i) 4 “te.
KR BRB renga 3% HK
Otomo Sadamune KK $F rengashi 32 3R bp Otomo Sorin K KR mR uP ri FR.
Otomo Ujiyasu KR Ar: rinji KB a
Glossary 375 rinka (ringe) # F Sagami *G me Rinsen kakun BE "] % Bh Saicho eo ¥
Rinsenji Bf "] 4 Saihdji (“Moss Temple,”’
Rinzai Ba FF Kokedera ) BAF Rinzai Gigen He ARB Saihoji ikun #5 Fase FH
Rishoto #] A YE saikyojo FCF YK
ritagyo $1] tu4T Saiokuken Socho
Ritsu 4¥ KB PT RE
Rokuhara tandai Saishoko’in & ARYL. BF
7s RE TR AR Saitd Ritei-ni Rokuo’in BE. Fz (9 he-+') BE
Rokuon nichiroku Sakai 29 |
BB 4% Sakamoto 3f. AR
Rokuon sodroku # 30.14 & sakaya 38%
Rokuon’in #2 ¥¢, Pd, sake 3B
roshi *- bm Sakugen Shiryo ‘4 x ie zB
ryogen 8 KH samu VE AF
rydke 4B HK samurai dokoro 4% pir
ryosaku 5 SG Sane’in = @ $,
ryoshu AB z Sane’in ikai ae PZ. Jie sanmon 2. PY (dw FID Rytshoji FZ DY | 4 Sanmon bugyo wb PYF Sano 4% BF
Sanpo’in = ¥ BZ,
sado (chado) ys 7. Sanshoji garanzu
Sado 44. si 2 ES pot Te)
Saga Arashiyama sanzen Be HB.
HE ude Bd Sara BY
Saga tenno We vd KZ sarugaku 4% Se
376 Glossary Sasaki Sadashige sengoku daimyo By BX
JERR FE senjo 2 iF Sasaki Sadatsuna senjudo + ¥ ¢
kz BRR “senmen” 7%, &
Sasaki Takauji senmon dojo g PA ay cz
1) ae eS SennyUji Z 4
Sasaki Ujiyori SenyOmon’in F PF PT hz JE AAR Ww FR Sera Shinnd tt B FLE Sasaki-no-sho 44% He sesshin FR nm
satori BE Sessht Toyo FRE H
Sei tsubun x ap ef] Sesson Yubai 4 +4 & ##-
seidd © ¥ Setsudo Sdboku #& | RF Fh Seido’in jojo kishiki Settsu Fie 22 i OE PZ te x ie Shaka Nyorai #% fre-x0o K
seihan % #)£. shami 7V or:
seihanshu © HE32. shang-t’ang e
seijin & >? shang-tso 1 FE
Seikenji 4a F shariden 44!) 4& Seisetsu Shocho sharyO WEAR
hth EE Shasekishu 37% 4 seizo F Je Shen-hsiu RY F seji th & Shen-hui #7 @ sekisho Be PT sheng-seng ¥£ 18
sekkai ZR, ®% Shiba Takatsune SYR BFE Sekko Soshin be SL 2H Shiba Yoshimasa #‘T KEW
Sen no Rikya + #'] 14 shichidd garan Ete &
senbutsujo SE LF shiddsen #8] ESE sendanrin 3% #8 FK shih-ch’a T %'|
sen’e Fm | shih-che 14 4
senglu 1% 3% shih-fang chu-ch’ih + HIE Fy
seng-t’ang 42 Shih-shih # ¥
Glossary 377 Shihi-no-sho Eee shitaji chubun F #2. PF
Shihon 2 #& shitomido ¥ P
shiji no zazen 09 ¥f ot T. sho fr
shika Ko & sho 4 shikan sk. $2, Shobai’in F& Fe PZ shikan taza KRYITTE Shobd genzo E34 ab,
shiki FY Shoden’an hatto
shikken PU FE iE. 18 ® sk OE
Shima ~ Ag shodo 38. sd shimobe F 3B shdeki oH er Shimdsa TF #@. shoen te Bl
Shinano 4% 7% Shofukuji ® #B7f Shinchi (Muhon) Kakushin Shogaku-ni EF ¥
nes St (FR AR )# no Shogen’in #4 Ar PZ,
shinden-zukuri Shogen-ha #4 Je otk
BBE Shogo’in # aq FZ,
shindo ke shdgun Ay B.
shingt 7% FKL shohd jisso #7 ¥ #R Shingonsht Az % Shdichi Kokushi #% — & ¢i Shinjo-go Hr Py SEB shoin-zukuri & PRE
Shinju’an & 7% A, shoji R4t shinka jisha % BA shojo jisha EKA
shinnyo hokkai R-re 7h shoki $ 3 Shinnyoji A 40% shoko jisha 1%, GFF Shinoki-no-sho te HK He Shokokuji #4 4
Shinran Hn, ag Shoni “YA
Shinsho Sh6nin B Be Shoren’in 4 @ BZ,
Shinto PoE shoro 3%. F®
shin’yo ae Gi shdsan 1). 3% shishi 4bip F- shoshin BB ae
shissui & ¥K shoso ¥ 19
378 Glossary shoso jisha B 194 F# Sojiji #8. 9 F
shdsod6 Ag 48 ¥ Sdkan jf #8
shosu fr. ¥. Sdken’in FZ. 2 PL shou-tso & sokushin jobutsu BP H m 44 shozan A vA somon #2: PA ‘“Shozan juen kinsei jojo” sorin & HK oH ir ~ $F, Pa P| 1 2 Sorin Zenmon me pa Te. PY
shu-chi $F sOroku 48 SK Shudatsu choja 44 ¥EA soshidan 7A BP HB. shugo # 2] soshidd Fa bp Z.
shugo daimyo # #¥ X*% sdshobun %8. B® Shihd Myocho Busey #2 Sota FH 2
shukkan *& 'F Ssu 4 shukke tk Re ssu-chu 4
Shukke taiko & HK #R Stien a 2G
shumidan 64 78 *8. Sigan ® Pa Shunjo 42% rial Sugawara BR Shunjobo Chogen Sugyoroku @ rs Rer a
RE tH HR Sijuji KAA Shun’oku Myoha Suko tenno B¥ RK g Ie le xy fe, Sung Rg
shuryo ya G Sung kao-seng-chuan
“Shuryo shingi”’ Re 1B 1% ep y's sh FE, Sung Lien R 5 shuso % # Sung-wen-hsien-kung-ch tian-chi Shuzenji 4h #9 4+ RULE REE shuzoshi 2 4] Sung-yuan p’ai Sé tsubun 3& #p fe] $s, Fg sik
sobo 48 &
sodo 4@ 2 Sua BA
sohei 48% Suruga &% 27]
Glossary 379 Ta-hsiu Cheng-nien Tao-hsuan BR
KA GE a tatamt #
Ta-hui X #. tatchn ie BB ta-ts’an KF Te-hui 42. ¥# Tachikawa-rya 32") 7 Te-shan Hsuan-chien
Tai-pai-shan t’ien t’ung ching te 12 aie. |
ch’an ssu : Tendai K @
KBWKE FE 8A Tendo Nyojd K exe oH “Taidai koho” #f KO HB tenjin BE ns
taigi meibun K RAD tenka soroku KF 19 SE
Taiheiji A #4 Tenryuji K Fe #
Taiheiki K-FRO Tenryuji-bune K AEF He Taikan shingi Ke Hh FR Tenryuji kinen koryaku
Taikeiji KX BF KR FEA LES MH
taimitsu & ¥ Ten’yo Seikei K BA 2% FE Taira Kiyomori FF “es tenzo St
_ Taira Yoritsuna -f ¥B $f2) ‘“Tenzo kyokun”’ fi FE RKB"
Tajima 12% Tettd Giko ee Ke ca
Takaie-no-shd % Re ie Tettsii Gikai 4 ft & 7D
Takakura tenno & B Kg tien-tso 32
Takeda FY @ t ‘ien-ching RK #f takuhatsu $4. AR T’ien-jan Ch’an-shih
tan R KATE bp Tan-hsia $} Fis T’ien-t’ai K
tan-liao @ s Tien-t’ai-shan K @ 0A T’an-yu 4 yey T’ien-t’ung Ju-ching
Tanba +} 2£. KE Ho ad tandai +6 2B T’ien-t’ung-shan RF vd» Tang ¥ T’ien-t’ung-ssu KK ¥ 5
tansen £E BE to + Tao-an E "f- To tsubun Z ap fl
380 Glossary tochigyo 2 Ko 47 Tomitanosho “6 B 3
Todaiji BRKF Tomiyoshi-no-sho ‘% & ¥-
todo RY Tomy6o Enichi g af %.8
Tofukuji % 764 Tomyoji RAY F Tofukuji jojogoto FBT ih. F tonin BB A
Tofukuji-shi % FBX BE, Tosa + 44
Togan Ean LR x. ie Toshddaiji BF
Toguds RK Toshoji R WF
tohan R HE. tosu R 7
tohanshu RIL Totoku Shinno #f 7g HB, E
Toi KF Totomi 3% 2x
Toji bugyo RF de 47 tou chu BH
Toj'in FH BZ toyaku jisha 7 FA Tojiji ‘% 15 FF Toyotomi Hideyoshi
Tokeiji g BF a Toki x v& Tozenji ¥ BIZ
Tokoji ¥ RF tozo ROK
tokubun > Tsan-ning Fe sf Tokugawa Hidetada Tse-shan I-hsien a wa Ay FX KB, & e, tsibun APB Py
Tokugawa Iemitsu tsuchi ikki (do-ikki) +. — FR
42. " I tsuchien JR # BE
Tokugawa leyasu Tsung-ching-lu 5% 3%,
4B) Eq Tsung-tse B a
Tokuhashi go 4B té, 485 Ts’ung-shih iE 1
tokusei 48. KL tsuridono 3) B&
tokuseirei 48, BL Tsurugaoka Hachimangu
tokuso 44 5% 7,Q/ EE
Tokuzenji 4%, 1B. F tsusu AP 4
Tokuzenji hatto tu-liao 4% Be
42. FEA KE tu-ssu $B 4
Glossary 381 tu-wei-no Ap HE #P Wu-feng 2. x Tung-ming Hui-jih R Ap %. A Wu-hsueh Tsy-yuan
Tung-shan ¥ DA JB. 4 7A A
tung-ssu AP 4 Wu-liang Tsung-shou
tung-ts’ang Rye EH 5
Udono sekisho #& BK hg PA ae ee APY B.
Uesugi Zensht LY. #4 Ff ee smn
Uji 2 es 7 ORS.
ujidera fx, 3 = unds & ¥ Wu Tse-t’ien sy 2!) K
Wu-t’aishan 2 & a
Unganji 4 PA 4%
unpan Z Wh kubuku-mai Unsen Taikyoku Eek tk “osALK ou meSZ. ne ft
m 2G GL. IG Ususama Myoo ype HL
Uragami Zenmon 24 AE FW Yakuchiu Zen on shingi
z Z A A aR E yakunin IRA Yamaguchi WwW? usuya 4 & Yamamoto-no-sho wv RE waka 4o Fy Yamana Tokiuji »* % &
Wakasa % FA Yamanouchi-no-shd wh P} ie Wan-nien-ssu & HF Yamanoue wv & Wang Hsuan-ts’e LRG Yamashiro Jv 3K
wang-liao ¥ pS , Yamato A #°
Wanshiha & | AK Yang-ch’i p’ai Hy PR AK Wanshi Shogaku "% 7 se ee Yano Betsumyo K ¥} %'] *%
wayo +p $f Yano-no-sho ® BF Pr
Wei-mien Y# £2 Yodo sekisho 3€_ BA Pr
wei-no KE. FP Yogi-ha Hy tk 2K
Wu-an P’u-ning TC Fibs 3 2 Yokoyama Gonnokami
Wu-chun Shih-fan Yoshiharu +e vr AE 3] S K
$B Es 3 bip %. yokushitsu oo BS.
382 Glossary Yosai. See Myoan Eisai Zenkaku Fe g
Yoshino & FF Zenkoji FESR SZ Yoso Soi AH RB zenkon & té Yotokw’in Ay 4: ee Zenkyo’an RE & %s Yuasa Soken wy ix HR BA “Zenmon kishiki’’
Yuge-no-sho 4 #!] #4 Re PY xB, XH
yugen BAK Zen’on shingi F¥ fe. 7m FR: Yun-men Wen-yen Zenpukuji * We E
& Flue Zenrin biyo shingi
Yura-no-sho ® B ¥& AR TK 1h A om RR
za TERK ES Zenrin shokisen
zakumon Ab 45 SX Zenrinji RE. TK A
zassho BE % Zenritsu bugyo #¥ AE BRAT zasso ketsudansho Zenritsugata P¥ 4Z. F
EE. a BT P fy Zenritsugata tonin
zasu BE. AREA BA
zazen AL 1 Zenzai Doji % Be F Zeami th Fe 5B zoeiryo Be Me t+
Zekkai Chtshin £8, 7 ? 7z zOsu we x
Zen He Zuikei Shiho £% % | fi Zen daiku TF KX “Zuiryuzan Taihei Kokoku
Zendo H¥. ¢ Nanzen Zenji” 3 Fe HK FAR Zendo shuso Ae 2h EN % 1%
Zenji KE A Zuisenji 5 % 4
Index
A-yii-wang-shan, xviii, 36, 206;asa model Andojd (certificates of confirmation of
for Japanese monasteries, 177 land rights), 103 Abbot (jiji or chdrd), 228-236; duties of, Ankokuji (Temples for Peace in the 77, 143, 154, 164, 170, 196, 211, 232; Realm), 101, 103, 106-109, 110, 113, bakufu regulations on, 88, 167, 168- 114, 294 169, 231; installment of, 155-156, Appointment, certificates of (zakumon or 169, 189, 194, 208, 227, 232-233; as inari kumon), 233; selling of, 234, 235 the Buddha, 195; bodhisattva vows of, Architecture, styles of, 200 228; appointment of, 228-231, 233;in Arhats, 189-190, 196 China (shang-tso), 236; training of, Arhat hall (rakandd), 190
244;income of, 269, 270 Arnesen, Peter, 15
Abbots’ halls (fang-chang; hojd), 35, 124 Artisans (ninku), 245 180, 181, 189, 197-201, 215; func- Ashikaga family, 18; patronage of Zen by,
tions of, 126, 143, 197-199, 201; xvi, 29-30, 81, 84, 91, 98-102, 180, ground plans of, 179, 199-200; archi- 222, 253, 254, 258, 260, 293; and Zen
tectural style of, 200 culture, 80, 102; and gozan system, 91,
Absentee guarantor (honke), 255 98-102, 109, 287, 288; and Go-Daigo,
Accountant (chih-sut), 236 95-96, 104-105; Zen practice of, 98-
Acolyte (jisha), 169, 227, 228, 229, 237, 99; and conflict with Enryakuji, 105243-245; monks’ hall (shdsd jisha), 106, 287; temple of, 106; proliferation 157; appointment fees for, 236; kinds of shozan under, 115; protection of of, 239, 243; training of, 243; income gozan by, 124; regulation of gozan by,
of, 270 165-170, 246; ties with Nanzenji, 263
Agents (azukari-dokoro), 255 Ashikaga Mochiuji (1398-1439), 262
Aizen Mysoo, 49 Ashikaga Motouji (1340-1367), regulation Akamatsu Norisuke (1314-1371), 118, of gozan by, 165
121 Ashikaga Sadauji (c. 1274-1333), 81
Akamatsu Toshihide, 96 Ashikaga Tadayoshi (1306-1352), 13, 84, Altar platform (shumidan): tablets for, 95, 98, 259; and Muso Soseki, 102,
191-192 107; and division of power with TakauAnalects, 79 ji, 103; household government of, 104, Amida, 27, 31, 80-81, 145; hall of, 99. 118; trade mission organized by, 105;
See also Pure Land building under, 107; expansion of milli-
Andogata (Commissioner for Confirming tary power by, 108-109; assassination
Rights to Land), 104 of, 109; gozan system under, 110, 260,
384 Index Ashikaga Tadayoshi (1306-1352) (con- invasions, 61-62, 71; regulation of
tinued) | monasteries by, 74-78, 83, 88, 103,
294; jissatsu under, 114; regulation of 165-170; and Go-Daigo, 76-77, 92, Zen by, 117-118, 167, 169, 222, 235- 94; cultural interests of, 78-80, 83-
236 84; income for, 101; gozan system
Ashikaga Takauji (1305-1358), 13, 86, under, 103, 110, 260, 294 93, 101; Zen patronage by, 84, 98, Bakufu, Muromachi: gozan system under, 102, 151, 260, 294-295; against Go- 101-102, 106, 109, 113, 119, 125, Daigo, 95; and division of power with 236, 241, 266; and foreign trade, 101, Tadayoshi, 103; death of, 109; regula- 124, 284; founder of, 102; power tion of Zen by, 117-118, 170; and structure of, 103, 104; establishment monastic domain management, 259, of Rishoto and Ankokuji by, 107-
264 108; military expansion of, 108-109;
Ashikaga Yoshiakira (1330-1367), 261; jissatsu under, 113, 115; income of,
gozan system under, 110; jissatsu 234-236, 279-280, 288 under, 114; regulation of Zen by, Bakufu, Tokugawa, 268
117-118 Bathhouse (yokushitu), 178, 184, 201-
Ashikaga Yoshihisa (1465-1489), 125 206; ground plans of, 175, 201-202; Ashikaga Yoshimasa (1436-1490), 98, at T’ien-t’ung-shan, 202, 203 266; succession of, 124; gozan re- Bell tower (shoro), 184 building under, 125, 267; debt edicts Benddhd (Regulations for the monks’
by, 282 hall, 1245), 148 Ashikaga Yoshimitsu (1358-1408), 97, Benddwa (Distinguishing the Way), 49
98, 99, 101; gozan system under, 110, Bhadrapala, 202 119, 222, 270; building of Shékokuji Bodaiji (family temple), 106, 273 by, 111; jissatsu under, 114; patronage Bodhidharma, 7, 37, 39, 50, 137, 139,
by, 123; and MyGshinji land confisca- 190 tion, 128; gozan regulations by, 167, Bodhisattva: precepts of, 37, 162, 202, 170, 232-233; foreign trade policy of, 228, 245; Dogen’s teachings on, 53;
284 Jizs, 69, 80, 84, 102, 191; Kannon,
Ashikaga Yoshimochi (1386-1428), 98, 49, 80, 102, 172-173, 196; Mafijusri
266 158
127; sdroku and Inrydken offices (Monju), 162, 197, 207, 210, 238; under, 123; patronage by, 123; gozan Zenzai Doji, 189 regulations by, 233; assassination of, Bonmdkyo (Sutra of the Brahma’s net), Ashikaga Yoshinori (1394-1441), 101; Bonten, 190
assassination of, 124, 288 Boshi nyuminki (1468), 284 Asoka, 64 Buddha. See Sakyamuni
Assemblies, monastic, 142-143, 199;kinds Buddhacarita (Deeds of the Buddha), 5
of, 195 Buddha halls, 35, 72, 111, 178, 190-194;
Assistants (anja): rules for, 76; duties of, function of, 10, 123-124; development
187, 211, 219, 237 of, 10, 140; in Ch’an centers, 35, 194;
Ateokonatjo (certificates of reward), 103 elevations of, from Chin-shan-ssu, 175;
Attendants (shoji), 245 KenchOji, ground plan of, 179, 190,
Avatamsaka sutra (Kegon-kyd), 217 198; golden (kondd), 184, 191; Eiheiji,
Awajiya Jugen, 126 ground plan of, 190; annexes of, 190, Azuma kagami, 40 altar platform of, 191-192; importance of, 193; rejection of, 193
Bakufu, Kamakura, 19, 20, 58-80; pa- Buddhist Law, 162; decline of, 31, 145 tronage of Zen by, 26, 40; and Eisai, Bukk6 lineage, 116. See also Muso Soseki; 36-41; and Dogen, 53-54; and Mongol Wu-hsueh
Index 385 Buninjod (letters of appointment), 103 Ching-te ch’uan-teng-lu (Transmission of Bursar (tsibun), 78, 239, 287; duties of, the lamp, 1004), 138, 194, 251 78, 240, 241, 242, 276-277, 278; Ch’ing-cho Cheng-ch’eng (Seisetsu Shocho,
moneylending by, 280-281 1274-1339), 30, 77, 79, 83, 92, 149; Bushi, 93, 98, 226, 228, 247, 276; relli- writings of, 135 gious inclinations of, 59, 61, 291 Chinsé (portrait), 41, 42, 79, 201
Butsuden. See Buddha hall Chiyoku. See Prefect, bath
Butsunichi’an kOmotsu mokuroku, 79 Chégen (1121-1206), 31, 36 Chirakuji, 114 Ceremonies, monastic, 11, 78, 100, i144, Choshu. See Prefect
145, 151, 155, 160-161, 175, 208, Chu Hsi, 97
232-233, 270, 271, 280 Chu-hsien Fan-hsien (Jikusen Bonsen, Ceremony chamber (raima), 199 1292-1348), 77, 102 Ch’an: monasteries, xvii, 43, 172, 186, Chuang-tzu, 79 187; development of, 7-9, 26, 37; in Chtho Chiisho, 123 Sung dynasty, 9-10, 26, 27, 32, 33, Chung-feng Ming-pen (Chuhd Mydhon, 41, 134; influences on, 10, 33, 79; and 1263-1323), 129, 152 Tendai, 26, 33; and Japanese pilgrim Closed monastery (tsuchien), 93, 116,
monks, 26, 32-33, 36, 48, 50, 63, 150, 231 134, 146; opposition to, 55-56;appeal Commissioners of Religion, 119
in Japan of, 61, 78-80, 83-84, 85,87, Comptroller (kansu), 239; duties of, 99-100, 147; monk emigrations, causes 154, 277 of, 64-65; monastic codes, 134-149; Comptroller, Assistant (fusu), 239; duties community life of, 137; monasteries as of, 154, 277 Japanese model, 172-182, 186-189, Confucianism, 33, 63, 97, 182
292 Contemplation. See Meditation
Ch’an-lin pei-yung ch’ing-kuei (1311),135 Controller (tien-tso), 236 “Ch’an-men kuei-shih” (1004), 135, 136, Cook, monastery (tenzo), 219, 230, 239,
138-145, 193, 195, 197, 207 240; regulations for, by Dodgen, 148
Ch’an-yuan ch’ing-kuei (Ch’an-yuan Code, Council of State (Hydjoshu), 83
1103), xvii, 64, 135, 137, 138-145, Court of Pleas (zasso ketsudansho), 259 146, 149, 186, 197-198, 203, 207208, 215-216, 240, 251-253, 278
Ch’en-hsu, 138 Daidenho’in. See Negoroji
Chia-ch’a. See Principal temples Daigo, Emperor (885-930), 96 Chiao-ting ch’ing-kuei (1274), 135, 194 Daigoji,95 |
Chiden. See Prefect, hall Daigon Shuri Bosatsu, 190 Chief monk (fuji), 155 Daijdji: ground plans of, 174
Ch'ih-hsiu Pai-chang ch’ing-kuei (1336), Daikaku-ha, 70
63, 135, 137, 145, 146, 152, 208 Daikakuji, 85, 263
Chiji. See Steward Daikan. See Estate deputies “Chiji shingi” (Regulations for monastery Daikatsu Ryéshin, 40, 41
officers, 1246), 148 Dainichibd NGénin, 28, 39, 45
Chin-shan-ssu: Buddha hall of, 175, 198; Dainichikyd, 43 latrine of, 204, 205; reading room of, Daisen’in. See Daitokuji
216-217 Daitd Kokushi. See Shthd Mydchsd
Ching-shan-ssu, xviii, 41, 42, 48, 174, Daitokuji, 1, 29, 30, 91, 127-129, 180, 175, 214; as model for Japanese mon- 181, 225, 228, 286, 289, 291, 295;
asteries, 66-68, 173, 177, 208, 212; founder of, xviii, 86, 92, 127, 270;
monks’ hall of, 213 gozan status of, 93, 110, 112, 269,
Ching-t’ang chueh-yuan, 72 270; jissatsu ranking of, 114, 125;
386 Index Daitokuyji (continued) Eihei shingi, 135, 148 monks’ hall of, 125; patronage of, Eiheiji, 1, 146; ground plans of, 174, 175, 125-126, 127, 222, 273; Dharma hall 178, 190; monks’ hall of, 214 of, 126, 196, 197, 272; abbot’s hall of, Etheiji garanzu, 178, 190
126, 272; natural features of, 183; Eihdji: Kannon hall of, 180; founder’s bathhouse of, 204; economy of, 254- hall of, 180 255, 269-275, 278, 288; income of, Eikoji: pagodas in, 107 269, 270, 274, 281-282; shden rights Eisai. See Myoan Eisai of, 269, 274; tea ceremony at, 273 Eison (1201-1290), 70
Daitokuji hatto, 135, 152 Engakuji, xix, 1, 30, 72, 94; abbots of, 72, “Daitokuji jiyO gegyO sadamebumi,” 269 74; regulations for, 75-76, 77-78, 103, Daruma school, 37, 39. See also Bodhid- 222, gozan status of, 76, 93, 110, 222;
harma ground plan of, 178; Buddha reliquary
Debate. See Mondo of, 178, 261; Buddha hall of, 194; Deities, protective, 25, 156, 190; principal architectural style of, 200; hajo of, (honzon), 191; of bathhouses, 202; of 201; population of, 221-223, 256,
latrines, 205 257; youths in, 246; economy of, 254, Dengaku, 102, 127 255-263; landholdings of, 255, 259; Dharma hall (hattd), 43, 111, 126, 154, stewardship rights of, 256, 257, 268, 184, 194-197; development of, 9; in 276; income of, 256, 260, 262; and Ch’an centers, 35, 41, 171, 194-195; domain instability, 258-259, 262
functions of, 123-124, 140, 143; ele- Engakuji keidai ezu, 178 vations of, from Ching-shan, 175; ‘‘Engakuji seifu josho” (1327), 117 ground plans of, 179; importance of, Enlightenment: through Zen practice, 3, 193; as seat of mondd, 195; oldest in 5, 7, 146, 160, 190, 292; of Buddha, 3, Japan, 196, seating positions in, 237 5, 189; transmission of, 7; ‘‘sudden,”’
Dharma Realm of Absolute Reality 8, 9, 194; Nonin’s, 39; Ddgen’s, 50;
(shinnyo hokkai), 158 mindfulness as a vehicle to, 148; Bhad-
Dhyana. See Ch’an rapla’s, 202
Ddgen Kigen (1200-1253), 25, 28, 45, EnniBen’en(ShdichiKokushi, 1202-1280),
49-56, 145, 147-148, 172-173, 185, xviii, 30, 31, 41-48, 84, 92, 146, 172, 205, 214, 217, 240; writings of, 49- 174, 214; writings of, 45, 135, 149 51, 135, 148, 173; rejection of syncre- Ennin (793-864), 3-4, 9, 32, 65, 82 tism by, 50, 52, 193; court rebuke of, Enpd dentdroku, 226 52, devotion to Lotus Sutra by, 52- Enryakuji (Hieizan line of Tendai), 40,
53; successors of, 54; monastery build- 45, 88, 105, 288; landholdings of,
ings, views of, 193 14-15; sources of income of, 16;
Dormitory head (rydgen), 157 monk-soldiers of, 19, 20, 59, 95, 121;
Dosen. See Tao-hsuan and conflict with Zen, 27, 37, 105, Dosho (629-700), 3 112, 293; pilgrim-monks of, 31; conDos6. See Pawnshops flict with Dédgen, 51, 52; imperial patronage of, 94; abbots of, 45, 95; East Mountain, 7, 8-9 military strength of, 95-96; commerEastern hall (todd), 230-233 cial activities of, 95, 283; and Ashi-
Eastern ranks (tohan), officers of, 169, kaga conflict, 105; and Nanzenji Gate 237, 239; functions of, 242, 270, 276- incident, 120-121, 293 277, 287, 296; finances of, 279-280, Entairyaku, 106
284 Esoteric Buddhism, 4, 43, 45, 88, 92; Ten-
Echizen, 49, 51, 54 dai version of (taimitsu), 52; and JapaEicho (d; 1247), 40, 41, 48 nese emperors, 85, 94
Index 387 Estate deputies (daikan), 277, 279 110; political motives of, 94-98; resEstate . overseers (shosu), 241, 277-279 toration by, 94, 96-97, 222, 264, 269; memorial site for, 103-105; as a
Fa-hsiang, 249 Zen monk, 149; Court of Pleas of,
Finance, monastery: sources of income, 259
Japan, 15-16, 17, 124, 270-272; ac- Go-Fukakusa, Emperor (1243-1304), 47,
count keeping of, 128, 169; economic 48, 68 self-sufficiency of, 137, 144; fund- Go-Fushimi, Emperor, 261 raising by, 144; management of, 154, Go-Murakami, Emperor (1328-1368), 85 241, 270, 276-277; sources of income, Go-Saga, Emperor (1220-1272), 47, 51,
China, 249-253, 254, 256, 257; east- 84,92 ern rank control of, 242; expenses of, |. Go-Toba, Emperor (1180-1239), 11, 40
279-280, 287-288 Go-Tsuchimikado, Emperor (1442-1500}, Finance office (nassho), 272, 277 279
Five Mountains. See Gozan Go-Uda, Emperor (1267-1324), 13, 48, Fo-fa ta-ming-lu (Buppd daimeiroku), 43 84-85, 93 Founder’s hall {kaisandd), 180, 271; of Goho Myoo, 190
Tofukuji, 201 Gokoku shdbdgi (Principles of the true Fudd Myoo, 25, 49 Buddhist law in defense of the coun-
Fukan zazengi (Principles for the universal try), 51. See also Dogen
promotion of zazen)}, 50, 53 Golden Pavilion, 201
Fumonji: jissatsu status of, 114 Gosaie, 111
Fuse Shochin, 119 Gottan Funei. See Wu-an P’u-ning “Fushukuhanpd” (Method of taking meals, Gozan (Five Mountains), xvi, xvii, xii;
1246), 148 in China (wu-shan), xvi, xvii, 10, 29,
Fisu. See Assistant Comptroller 32, 41, 100, 177; development of,
xvi, 29, 76, 84, 85, 91, 103, 109, 146, Gakuji (inscribed tablets): by Wu-chun, 174 222-223; lineages of, xviii; historical
Gakuonji: pagoda in, 107 studies of, xix, 109; in India, 29; de-
Gansho, 48 cline of, 30, 123-125, 234, 262, 289; Gates, monastery, 188-190; inscriptions Ashikega patronage of, 29-30, 84, 91, for (gakuji), 174, 179; mountain (san- 98-102; hierarchy of, 47, 88, 109-110; mon), 184, 232; characteristics of, as cultural centers, 61, 74, 91, 99-100,
188-189; symbolic meaning of, 189 124, 293; reorganization of, 93-94, “Gateway to the mysterious” (genkan), 119; peak of, 98, 109, 123-125, 291;
200 diaries of, 100; incorporation of Anko-
Ga’un nikkenroku (1446-1473), 100 kuji and Rish6téd into, 108; numbers of
Gautama. See Sakyamuni monasteries in, 115-116, 291; finances
Gazan J oseki (1275-1365), 54 of, 124, 275, 284-289; enrollments in, Genpo Reisan (d. 1608), 268 221-224, 225; branch temples of, 225,
Genji lineage, 129 288; administrative hierarchy in, 123, _ Getsud Chiky6, 66 come from, 234-236; landholdings of, Getsugai Chéja (Sudhana), 189 227-228, 234; abbots, in, 229-230; inGid6 Shtshin (1325-1388), 99, 120; 265-266, 285; and Onin War, 267
diary of, 100, 122 Gozan jissatsu zu (Illustrations of the Five
Gikt. See I-k’ung Mountains and Ten Temples), 174; Go-Daigo, Emperor (1288-1339), 13, 74, composition of, 175-177; latrines 76-77, 80, 84-85, 91, 112, 113, 149, shown in, 204 264, 289; patronage by, 92-93, 254, Guardian deity, hall of, 156, 190 258, 294; gozan system under, 93-94, Guest pavilion (daikyakuden), 200
388 Index Guilds, merchant (za): as a source of and Dégen, 54; patronage of Zen by, monastery income, 16, 18, 254, 283 57-58; enlightenment of, 60, 69, 72;
Gyoji, 77-78, 117 and Lan-ch’i, 65-68; and Wu-an P’uGyoyt (d. 1241), 40, 41, 48 ning, 68-70 Hojo Yasutoki (1183-1242), 58 Hachiman, 59, 71 Hojo Yoshitoki (1163-1224), 58 Hakudo Bon’i, 124 Hokke uprising. See Lotus uprising
Hakuin (1686-1769), xviii, 125 “Holding the whisk’ (hinpotsu), 229-
Hakusan, 11, 19, 53 230, 231, 244, 296
Hall, John W., 96 “Holy monk” (shdsd), 238 Hanazono, Emperor (1297-1348), 85-86, Hdnen (1133-1212), 31
112,127 Honganji, 288 Hanzei, 124 Horinji, 118 Hatakeyama Yoshitsuna (d. 1545), 127 Hdsenji: jissatsu ranking of, 114 Hatano Yoshishige, 53-54, 56 Hosokawa Mochiyuki (1400-1442), 128
Heijo-ky5, 16 Hosokawa Takakuni (1484-1531), 128 Hekizan nichiroku, 100 Hosokawa Yoriyuki (1329-1392), 109; Hie shrine, 16, 95 regulation of gozan by, 120; and NanHieizan, 11, 14, 53, 183, 225 zenji Gate incident, 120-121
Hikitsukegata (Commissioner for Appeals), Hottd Kokushi zazengi (Principles of
104 meditation, Shinchi Kakushin}, 49
Hinayana, 37, 139, 147; monks of, 162 Hsu-an Huai-ch’ang (Kian Eshd), 36-37
Hino (Fujiwara) Arinori, 119 Hua-yen (Kegon), 4, 10, 249 Hinpotsu. See ‘‘Holding the whisk” Huan-chu-an (Genjii’an), 129 HodOji: jissatsu ranking of, 114 Huan-chu-an ch’ing-kuei (1317), 135, 152
Hojo. See Abbot’s hall Hui-ch’ang: persecution of, 250
Hojo family: patronage of Zen by, 28, Hui-neng (638-716), 8, 137, 139; and 57-80, 83, 84, 87, 88, 253, 254, 257, “sudden” enlightenment, 194. See also 293; cultural influence of Zen on, 78- Patriarchs 80; and Nichiren, 81; increased power Hui-tsung, Emperor, 80 of, 83; overthrow of, 86,91, 222;regu- Hung-chih Cheng-chueh (Wanshi Shogaku,
lation of Zen under, 117, 165-170; 1091-1157), 74 shozan status started by, 115; gozan Hung-jen (601-674), 7
system under, 288 Hyojoshiu (Council of State), 104
Hojo Masako (1157-1225), 38, 58
Hojo Sadatoki (1271-1311), 47, 82, 93, I-k’ung (Gikt, 786-842), 3 224, 257; and I-shan I-ning, 73-76; I-shan I-ning (Issan Ichinei, 1247-1317), regulations for monks by, 75-76, 167, 77, 92, 149, 222; and Hojo Sadatoki,
222; policies of, 83, 237, 246 73-76; and the Unity of Three Creeds, H6jo Takatoki (1303-1333), 47, 112; 79;as abbot of Nanzenji, 85 patronage of Zen by, 76-78; regulation Ishuso, 112
of gozan by, 167, 222, 246 IchijS Kanera (1402-1481), 184 H6jd Tokimune (1251-1284), 58,69;and lio Sadayuki, 119 Mongol invasions, 63, 71;and Lan-ch’i, Ikk6 school. See New Pure Land 70; patronage by, 70-73, 221;and Wu- = [kkyii Sdjun (1394-1481), 125, 133, 228,
hsueh Tsu-yuan, 72-73; death of, 73; 272, 273, 296 Buddhist name of, 73; policies of, 83; Imaeda Aishin, 107, 115 establishment of Engakuji by, 255; Imamura Fukumanji, 257, 258
memorial services for, 260 Income, monastic: land tax, 15, 154, 241, Hojo Tokiyori (1227-1263), 47, 57-65; 253, 286; donations, 15, 241, 253,
Index 389 254, 258; tax exemptions, 15; from Jdrakuji kishiki, 135 shoen, 15-17, 256, 257; sake brewing, Josetsu (1386?-1428?), 99 16, 260, 282, 283; pawnshops, 16,95, Joshi Jiishin (Chao-chou Ts’ung-shan,
280, 281, 282, 283;shiddsen, 16, 270, 778-897), 160 274, 281, 282, 283; medicine making, J6dzan Sozen (d. 1374), 121 16; monk-peddlars, 16; money-lending, Ju-chung jih-yung ch’ing-kuei (1209),
16, 124, 241, 253, 254, 262, 266, 277, 135, 194 280, 282, 283, 286; guild sponsorship, Jufukuji, 38, 40, 47, 66; gozan ranking 16, 18, 254, 283; market licensing, 16, of, 110; enrollments in, 223 18, 254; toll barriers, 17, 18, 254, 260, Juko’in, 273 268, 287; trade, 101, 124, 241, 253, Jun-gozan (associate gozan), 93, 110 254, 262, 283-284, 286, 295, 296;tax Jushii yoddki (Essentials of the Way of rice, 17, 256, 257, 264; temporary tax the ten sects), 45 levies, 260
Inka (seal of succession), 69, 129 Kaisan (founding abbot): of Jufukuji, 38;
Ind. See Registrar of Tofukuji, 43; of Kenchoji, 66, 113;
Inryoken, 123, 124, 232, 266 of Engakuji, 72; of Mydshinji, 86; of
Inrydken nichiroku, 100, 201, 246, 267, Daitokuji, 92; of Tenryitji, 104; of
278, 279, 280 Shokokuji, 111
Ippen (1239-1289), 21, 31, 61, 82, 294; Kakua (b. 1143), 31, 88-89 as Ji sect founder, 81; rejection of | Kamakura, xviii, 11, 20; warrior-leaders in,
monastic life by, 145 19, 26, 66-68; monasteries in, 30, 38,
Ishin Stiden (1569-1633), 123, 268 66-67, 68, 116; introduction of Zen Intendants, provincial (kokushi), 97 to, 37; shrines of, 40, 59; and Hdjé Iwashimizu Hachiman shrine, 71 regents, 58-80, 91;compared to Kyoto,
59, 79; and Mongol threat, 71; and
Jimy3’in line, 84, 85-86, 257 Chinese cultural influence, 79-80, 87;
Jingoji, 14 gozan system of, 93, 96, 110, 222-
Jinaimachi (monastic compounds), 16 223; loss of political centrality of, 93
Jinju. See Steward, sanitation Kameyama, Emperor (1249-1305), 47,
Jinnd shotdki (1339), 94 48, 84-85, 200-201, 263; palace of, 104
Jisect, 81-82 Kamikaze (divine winds), 62
Jissatsu. See Ten Temples Kangiten, 102
jito (military stewards), 14, 53-54, 88, Kanji (official monasteries), 29, 112
101, 115, 255, 276, 294 Kannon (Kuan-yin), 49, 80, 102, 172-173, Jizo, 84, 102, 191; statue at Kenchoji, 217, 271; Thousand Armed, 49, 196
69 Kannon hall, 173, 180 Joao Rodrigues (1561-1634), 133 Kanrei, 109, 120 Jochiji: gozan ranking of, 110; enroll- Kansu. See Comptroller
ments in, 223 Kanto bugyd, 104 Jodoji, 107 Kanzan Egen (1277-1360), xviii, 86, Jodo Shin school. See New Pure Land 127-128
Joei shikimoku (1232), 83 Karamono, 79 Jogakuji (imperially sponsored monastery), Kasho (customs-barrier permits), 103
93 Kasuga shrine, 16, 95
Jomyodji: gozan ranking of, 110, 113; Katsurayama Kagetomo, 48 jissatsu ranking of, 114;enrollments in, | Kegon school. See Hua-yen
223; abbots of, 230 Keichin, 94
Jérakuji: Lan-ch’i as abbot of, 66;monks’ Keizan Jokin (1268-1325), 54 hall of, 66, 214; regulations for, 149 Keizan koki, 135
390 Index Keizan shingi (1325), 135 Kodhd Kennichi (Bukkoku Zenji, 1241Kenchoji, xviii, xix, 30; patronage of, 60, 1316), 47, 73, 92 66; abbots of, 66, 69, 70, 72, 74;com- Kokan Shiren (1278-1346), 109
position of, 66-68; gozan status of, Kokawadera, 95 76, 93, 110; funding for construction Kokokuji, 48 of, 105; regulations for, 149; ground Kokubunji system, 107 plan of, 177-178, 179, 185, 187, 206; Kokufin (local warriors), 14, 276 Dharma hall of, 196; architectural Kokushi (National Master), 149 style of, 200; latrines of, 202, 205; K6émy6, Emperor (1321-1380), 86 bathhouse of, 203-204; washstands of, Komydin shinki, 106 205; monks’ hall of, 208, 209, 212, Konchi’in, 123 215; reading room of, 217-218;kitchen Kondé Rydichi, 250, 251 office of, 218, 219, 220; enrollments Kongdbuji. See Kdyasan in, 223; commercial activities of, 283 K6 no Moronao (d. 1351), 106
Kenchdji kishiki (1278), 135 Kdsatsu. See Principle Temples Kench6ji sashizu (Kenchdji ground plan), Késeiji, 114 177, 185-186, 190, 196, 199, 201, Kosen Ingen (1295-1374), 106, 129
208-209, 215 Kdshdji, 51, 52
Kenmu Restoration (1333-1336), 91,94, Kéyasan, 11, 48, 183, 225, 288; monk-
96-97, 222, 259, 264, 269. See also soldiers of, 13, 19; landholdings of,
Go-Daigo, Emperor 15, 241; toll barrier of, 17; military
Kenmu shikimoku (1336), 118 strength of, 88, 96; neutrality of, 95 Kenninji, 38, 43, 51, 173, 214; abbots of, | Kdzanji: Buddha hall of, 178 74, 230, 284; gozan status of, 93,110, Kdzen gokokuron (Promulgation of Zen as
113; destruction of, 125; sub-temple a defense of the nation), 37-38, 147, of, 192; hdj6 of, 201, enrollments in, 192. See also Eisai 224; commercial activities of, 284 Kuan-yin, See Kannon
Kenshun (1299-1357), 94 Kuga Michimune, 52
Khubilai (1225-1294), 62-63, 64 Kuge, 43, 48, 75, 87, 92, 93,100, 113, 226
Kian Soen (1261-1318), 73 Kiuge nichiyo kufu ryakusht, 100
Kichizan Mincho (1352-1421), 48 Kuj6 Michiie (1193-1252), 43, 45, 84
Kikei Shinzui (1401-1469), 124 Kujo Noriie, 51
103 Kumedadera, 107
Kensei (regulatory codes for monasteries), Kuakoku Meid (1328-1407), 122
Kissa yojoki (Treatise on tea), 38 Kumon bugyo (scrivener), 119
Kitayama palace, 111 Kung-an. See Koan
Kitchen, small (Ruri), 218-219 Kuro Genzaemon Morishige, 173 Kitchen-office (kuin), 180, 184,185, 218- Kuroda Toshio, 17, 96
220; offices in, 240 Kyéchi (‘‘grounds’’), 182
Kéan (‘‘case’”’), 2, 48, 49, 67, 81, 86, 98, Kyogen, 126
129, 149, 180-181, 215, 244 Kyoto, 11, 13, 14, 16, 17, 18, 19-20, Kofukuji, 11, 43, 45, 95, 116;landholdings 28, 45, 48, 51, 59; monasteries, in, of, 14, 15; guild sponsorship by, 16; 1, 29-30, 31, 38, 43, 106, 114, 116, toll barrier of, 17; monk-soldiers of, 19, 223-224: introduction of Zen to, 37; 59, 105; military strength of, 96; com- compared to Kamakura, 59, 79; cul-
mercial activities of, 283 tural tradition in, 87, 193; political
Kdgakuji, 114 power shift to, 91, 92, 93, 222; AshiKodgon, Emperor (1313-1364), 86, 104, kaga takeover attempts of, 95; military
105, 261 power in, 105-106; ascendence of Zen
Index 391 in, 106; gozan system in, 110, 111, Matsuji (branch temples), 106, 115
145, 180, 222-223 Matsumoto Shinhachiré, 96 Kytshi, 37, 41, 72 Meals, monastery, 206, 209-210, 211, 214, 218; rules for, by Dogen, 148
Labor, manual (samu), 2, 9, 100, 134, Meditation, 45, 49, 50, 87, 129, 297;
137, 144 introduction to Japan of, 3, 5; as a
Laborers (ninku), 76 vehicle to enlightenment, 5, in Ch’an, Lan-ch’i Tao-lung (Rankei Diryt, 1213- 7, 9, 134; and Taoism, 7; Tokiyori’s
1278), 42, 71, 84, 112, 146, 214; practice of, 69; and warrior rulers, line of, 65; and H6jd Tokiyori, 65- 81; Ashikagas’ relation to, 98-99; 68; as founder-abbot of Kenchdji, decline of, 100, 129, 133, 160, 192, 66-67, 113; and H6jo Tokimuni, 70; 288; and monastic regulations, 134school of, 70; successor of, 72; writ- 149, 157-161; in monks’ hall, 139,
ings of, 135, 149 211-212; time devoted to, 142-143,
Lao-tzu, 79 147, 158-160; salvation through, 145Latrines (tdsu), 178, 184, 201-206 146; walking, 212
Lecture hall (kodd), 184 Merchants, 18; Zen patronage by, 126, Lin-chi I-hsuan (Rinzai Gigen, d. 867), 273, 281, 289, 295; trade ventures
8, 190, 193; school of, 50; lineage by, 284
of, 64 “Merit certificates’ (kudokunari), 234-
Ling-yin-ssu. See Pei-shan 235 Literature of the Five Mountains (gozan Metropolitan Zen. See Gozan bungaku), 74 Middle Path. See Meditation
Local deities, hall of (dojidd), 156, 190 Minamoto Sanetomo (1192-1219), 38, 58
Lotus school. See Nichiren school Minamoto Yoriie (1182-1204), 38, 58 Lotus Sutra, 27, 31, 33, 67, 145, 162; Minamoto Yoritomo (1147-1199), 106; and Dogen, 52-53; and Nichiren, founder of Kamakura bakufu, 20, 58;
80-81 and Enryakuji tax dispute, 20; and
Lotus uprising, 19-20 ties with Onjoji, 38; wife of, 38, 58; Lu (Vinaya) school, xvii, Ch’an inde- and H6jo family, 83 pendence from, 8, 136, 139, 207 Ming-chi Ch’u-chiin (Minki Soshun, 12621336), 77, 85, 92
Mahakasyapa, 7 Missionaries, Christian, 125 Mahayana, 37, 52, 139, 147; monks Miura family, 57, 83 having taken precepts of, 162, 228 Miyazaka Yusho, 15
Maitreya, 151 Miyoshi Nagayoshi (1523-1564), 127 Mandokoro (Administrative Board), 104 Monasteries: background of, 1-21, 162-
Mangen Shiban (1626-1710), 226 163; number of, 10-11; enrollments Manjuji: gozan ranking of, 110, jissatsu in, 11, 168, 214, 221-228; ceremonies
ranking of, 114; enrollments in, 224 in, 11, 78, 100, 144, 145, 151, 155, Manjusri (Monju), 162, 197, 207, 210, 238 160-161, 175, 208, 232-233, 270,
Manpukuji, 1, 196 271, 280; landholdings of, 13-14, Many Mountains (shozan), 29, 112, 115, 265-266, 275-276; political power 120, 129, 151, 288; numbers of, 116, of, 15-20, 75-76, 93, 96; finances of,
225: destruction of, 125; enrollments 15-18, 128, 137, 144, 169-170, in, 225; offices in, 230; landholdings 240-241, 253-254, 256-257, 260,
of, 285 262, 279-286; monk-soldiers of, 19,
Mappo. See Buddhist law 20; Ch’an, 27, 79, 146, 249-253, 292;
- Master builders, 173 Sung model of, 28, 43, 66-68, 72, 86,
392 Index Monasteries: (continued) 2; development of, 9, 66, 171, 181, 98, 173, 177, 208, 212; and Mongol 207, 214; Sung model of, 43, 66-67; threat, 71; bakufu regulation of, 74- communal life in, 139; functions of, 78, 83, 88, 103, 165-170, 231; gozan 139, 141, regulations for, by Dodgen, status of, 76, 93, 109-115; ‘‘open”’ 148; ground plans of, 175, 179; im(jippd satsu), 93, 150; “‘closed’’ (tsu- portance of, 193; seating arrangements chien), 93, 116, 150, 231; construction in, 211-214; decline of, 296 of, 107, 172-173; pagodas in, 107- Monzeki, 18, 229 108; military strength of, 124, 295;de- Monzenmachi (monastic gates), 16 struction of, 124-125, 180, 289; rotat- ‘““Moon-gaining tower,’’ 200, 201
ing abbacy of, 128; life in, 134-149, Morinaga, Prince (1308-1335), 95 208; codes of, 134-139, 151-165; as- Mortuary funds (shiddsen), 16, 270, 274, semblies in, 142-143, 195, 199; rejec- 281, 282, 283 tion of life of, 145; offices in, 155- | Moss Temple. See Saihdji 159, 237-241, 242; ground plans of, Mt. Hiei, 19, 31, 76 from China, 172~182, 187; layout of, Mt. Kiya, 40, 48 184-188; hierarchy in, 227, 230, 236, Mt. Sumeru, 191 239; management of, 241-243, 275- Mt. T’ien-t’ai, 3-4, 36 289; lay workers in, 245; boundary Mu Ch’i, 80 disputes among, 275-276; estate offi- Muchi mondo (Questions and answers
cials of, 241, 270-271, 277; spiritual in dreams), 102
decline of, 296 Muin Genkai (d. 1358), 129 Monastery representative (zassho), 277- Mujaku Dochti (1653-1745), 184
278; fees paid to, 270, 272 Mujii chien (1226-1312), 47 Monchijo (Records Office), 104 Mukan Gengo (Fumon, 1212-1291), 47 Mondo, 58, 69, 98, 100, 129, 134, 140, Mumonkan, 48, 49. See also Kdan 142, 144, 180, 232; in Dharma halls, Murakami, Emperor (926-967), 96
194 Murata Juko (d. 1502), 127
Money-lending, 16, 95, 124, 169; as Muso lineage: gozan domination by, source of monastic income, 241, 253, xvili, 295; conflict with Hosokawa 254, 262, 266, 277, 280, 282, 283, Yoriyuki, 121; control of sdroku 295; bakufu levies on, 280; capital for, office by, 122-123; growth of, 150
284. See also Mortuary funds Muso Soseki (Kokushi, 1275-1351), xviii, Mongols: invasions by, 61-63, 72, 83; 47, 71, 84, 85, 113, 128, 149, 192, patronage by, 63; and emigration of 264, 292, 294; and I-shan I-ning, 74; monks, 64-65, 87; rumored spies of, Ashikaga patronage of, 93, 94, 98, 69-70, 74; Japanese prayers for sur- 102, 222; as kaisan of Tenryuji, 104, vival from, 71, 192. See also Kamikaze 150; lineage, monasteries of, 106, 111,
Monju. See Manijusri 114; temple and pagoda building by,
Monkan (1278-1357), 94 107; writings by, 135, 136, 296; reguMonks, Chinese émigré, xvii, 3, 7, 28, 77, lations by, 151-165, 166, 167, 169,
171; Japanese disciples of, 29, 172; 246; and Go-Daigo, 149; gardens and Japanese rulers, 57-89; reasons for designed by, 183 emigration, 64-65, Lan-ch’i Tao-lung, Myoan Eisai (Y6sai, 1141-1215), xvi, 25,
65-70; Wu-an P’u-ning, 68-70; Wu- 28, 30, 31, 51, 146, 172-173, 188, hsueh Tsu-yuan, 72-73; I-shan I-ning, 214; and the Kamakura shogunate,
73-76, 92 36-41, 81; teachers of, 36; writings of,
Monks’ domitories (sdbd), 184 37-38, 135, 147, 192; monasteries Monks hall (sddd), 43, 72, 89, 125, 144, founded by, 38; disciples of, 40; 156, 178, 184, 206-215, 219; numbers lineage of, 64 of monks in, 1, 214; daily schedule in, Myoko Séei, 128
Index 393 Myokoji, 114 temples in, 1, style of buildings, 181, My6shinji, 1, 20, 91, 127-129, 180, 181, 215; layout of, 185
225, 228, 289, 291, 295; founder of, Obaku shingi (1672), 135 xviii, 86, 127; spiritual decline of, 129; Oda Nobunaga (1534-1582), 19, 274 monks’ hall of, 129; Dharma hall of, Oeci disturbance, 124 196, 197; bathhouse of, 204; econom- Office of chief seat (shuso), 229, 237,
ics of, 288 239; appointment of, 230, 231; duties of, 238
Nagahara Keiji, 15, 96 Officers, monastery, 236-243; regulations Nakamura Hajime, 250 for, by Dogen, 148; regulations for, by Nanpo Jomy6 (1235-1308), 127 Muso, 155-159; kinds of, 157, 212,
Nanzenji, xviii, xix, 1, 47, 48, 85, 183, 213, 219, 229; regulations for, by
222; abbots of, 74, 85, 92, 122, 230, bakufu, 167, 168-169, 237; in monks’
264; gozan status of, 76, 93, 110; hall, 211-214; in reading room, 217; Gate, incident of, 120; sub-temples of, precepts taken by, 228; fees paid for, 123, 128; destruction of, 125, 267; 234-235; in China, 236; western rank, hojo of, 201, enrollments in, 223, 263; 237-239, 242; eastern rank, 239-240, youths in, 246; finances of, 254-255, 242, 276-277; lay (yakunin), 245
262, 263-269 Ogasawara Sadamune (1291-1347), 82, 83
Nara, 11, 13, 16, 18, 21, 45, 59, 183, 184, Onin War (1467-1477), 91, 115, 124-125,
190 126, 150, 178, 180, 223, 263, 267,
Nassho. See Finance office 273, 283, 287, 289, 295
Nature: in Ch’an thought, 182; monastery Onjoji (Miidera line): landholdings of, 14;
integration with, 182-183 monk-soldiers of, 19; and Eisai, 38;
Negoroji, 14, 88 and Enni, 41; abbots of, 45; Dogen’s
Negorosan, 11, 19, 288 relation to, 53; influence of, 88; and Nenbutsu, 31, 50, 59, 81, 99, 145. See Nanzenji Gate incident, 120-121
also Amida; Pure Land Onshdgata (Commissioner for Rewards),
Neo-Confucianism, 27, 33, 79 104
New Pure Land school, 11, 19-20 Open monasteries (jippd satsu), 93, 150 Nichiren (1222-1282), 21, 31, 80, 87, Otabumi (register of landholdings), 13-14 294; rejection of monastic life by, 145. | Otaka Shigenari, 118
See also Lotus Sutra Otomo family, 82, 84 Nichiren school, 11, 19-20, 61, 67 Otomo Sadachika (1248-1311), 82
Nijo Yoshizane (1216-1270), 47 Otomo Sadamune, 82
Ninnaji, 45 Otomo Sorin (1530-1587), 127 Ninsho (1217-1303), 70 Otomo Ujiyasu, 82
Nippo Sdshun (1358-1448), 128 Ouchi family, 84, 128
Nippon tdjo rentoroku, 226 Ouchi Yoshihiro (1356-1399), 124, 128
Nirvana, 5, 189 Owa Shirozaemon SOrin, 126, 273
No: actors’ patronage of Zen, 126; and concept of yugen, 200; kasshiki mask Pagodas (td), 101, 103, 106-109, 111,
in, 247. See also Zeami 184
Northern court, 81, 121 Pai-chang Huai-hai (Hyakujo Ekai, 749-
Northern school. See Ch’an 814), 135, 148, 160, 190, 193; as Novices (shami), 18, 76, 159, 166-168, Ch’an codifier, 8, 77, 136, 138, 139,
187, 227, 245-247 156, 207, 250; work ethic of, 9, 136, Nunneries, 225 137, 144 Nyoi’an, 274 | Pat-chang ch’ing-kuei, 135, 137, 138, 149
Pai-chang Code. See Ch’ih-hsui Pai-chang
Obaku school, xvi; number of active ch’ing-kuei
394 Index Patriarchs, 7, 8, 49, 137; hall (soshidd), P’u-ch’ing. See Mondo
156, 190-191 P’u-sa ying-lo-ching (Necklace sutra), 139
Patronage: by Ashikaga, xvi, 29-30, 81, Pure Land of Amida, 27, 80 84, 91, 98-102, 222, 253, 354, 258, Pure Land School, xvii, 4, 10, 11, 45, 87,
260, 293; imperial, 8, 18, 26, 30, 84- 99,129 89, 92, 93-94, 254, 258, 294; reliance
on, by monasteries, 10; as political Reading room (shuryd), 144, 180, 215force, 18; reasons for, 26; by Hojo 218; regulations for, by Dogen, 148,
regents, 28, 57-84, 87; by Kujo 217; ground plans of, 175; decline of, Michiie, 41-48; by sengoku daimyo, 181; staff of, 217
283 240
91, 126, 127, 128, 129, 273, 289, Rector (ssu-chu), 263
295 Refectory (jikido), 184
Pawnshops (dosd), 16, 95, 280, 281, 282, Registrar (ind), 237, 239; duties of, 78, Peasants: religious inclinations of, 81,145; Registrar General of Monks (sdroku), 123,
uprisings by, 124, 267, 282, 283; taxes 229, 232, 268; administrative control upon, 252, 266, 280; rental rights of, of gozan by, 117, 119, 120; duties of,
285-286 122, 231, 234, 235, 239, 280
Pei-shan: ground plans of, 175, 186; as Regulations, monastic, 28, 31, 49; Ch’an, model for Japanese monasteries, 177, 8, 49, 63, 64, 67, 134-149, 150, 152,
208, 212; Dharma hall of, 196 186, 194, 197-198, 206, 207-208,
Pei-yung ch’ing-kuei (1311), 143, 145, 215-216, 251-253; by Hojo family,
152 75-76, 77-78, 88, 117, 165-170, 222,
Pioneers, Japanese Zen: first, 25; Eisai, 246; by Ashikaga family, 103, 117-
25, 36-41, 171, 172; Dogen, 25, 45, 118, 165-170, 222, 232-233; by
49-56, 171, 172-173; early patrons Hosokawa Yoriyuki, 120-121;breaches of, 26, 28, 53, 56; motives of, 31-36; in, 141; by Dégen, 148; by Muso, 151-
Enni, 41-48, 171, 172; Kujd Michiie, 165 41-48; Shinchi Kakushin, 48-49 Reinan Shijo (1675-1752), 226 Postulants (kasshiki), 76, 159, 166-168, Renga, 126, 127
245-247 Rest hall (shindd). See Ceremony chamber
Precepts: importance of, 147; observance Rinka (“‘below the grove’’), 29, 291;
of, 161-162, 192 monasteries included in, 29, 30, 291
Prefect (chdshu), 154, 239; duties of, 237 Rinsen kakun (1339), 135, 136, 151-165, Prefect, bath (chiyoku), 238; duties of, 239 296; regulations for San’e-in, 152-155;
Prefect, guest (shika), 237, 239; duties of, regulations for the community, 155-
238 159; regulations for monastic life, 159-
Prefect, hall (chiden): duties of, 239 165; relationship to Tadayoshi’s codes, Prefect, sutra (zdsu), 229, 239; duties of, 170. See also Muso Soseki
238; training of, 244 Rinsenji, 112, 149; jissatsu ranking of,
Principal Temples, 33; in China (chia-ch’a), 114; characteristics of, 150; patronage
109, 115 of, 151; gozan ranking of, 151; sub-
Prior (kan’in), 240 temple of, 151; estate management of,
Prior (tstiisu), 237, 287; duties of, 154, 154-155; abbot of, 155-156; officers 239-240, 276-277, 278; money-lend- in, 156-157; women in, 162-163;
ing by, 280-281 leave from, 162, 163-164; youths in,
Proprietor (rydke), 255, 256 246; commercial activities of, 283
Provinces: in medieval Japan, 12; shden Rinzai school: establishment of in Japan, rights in, 13-16; taxes levied on, 257- xvii, 5, 78, 146-147; number of active
258, 264-265 temples in, 1; lineages contained in,
Index 395 29, 50, 64-65; Dogen’s criticism of, Seidd. See Western hall 50; in China, 64; and relation to medi- Seihan. See Western ranks eval society, 87; development of, 88; Seikenji, 114
modern derivation of, 125 Seisetsu Shdcho, 192. See also Ch’ingRishoto (Pagodas of the Buddha’s Favor), cho Cheng-ch’eng
101, 103, 106-109, 110, 294 Sekisho (toll barriers): as sources of
Ritsu sect, 70 monastic income, 17, 18, 254, 260, Rokuon’in, 122-123, 180 268, 287; Nanzenji Gate, 120-121
Roku’on nichiroku, 100 Sekk6 Sdshin (1408-1486), 128
Roshi, 2 Sen no Rikyt (1522-1591), 127 Ryoan Keigo (d. 1514), 44 Seng-lu, 119
Rytigen’in, 273 Sengoku daimyd, 18, 20, 30, 254, 267;
Ryushoji, 113; jissatsu ranking of, 114; patronage by, 91, 126, 128, 129,
finances of, 274 273, 289, 295
Seng-t’ang. See Monks’ hall
Saichod (767-822), 3, 37 Senmon dojo, 1
Saihdji, 149, 150 Sennyiji, 197
Saihoji ikun (1345), 150 Sen’y6mon’in, Princess, 13
, Saikyojo (judicial rulings), 103 Sera ShinnG, Prince, 149, 151 Saiokuken Soch6 (1448-1532), 127 Sesshin, 2. See also Meditation
Saish6k3G’in, 53 Sesshi Toyo (1420-1506), 44, 178,
Saitd Ritei-ni, 128 227-228
Sake brewing, 16, 18, 260, 282, 283 Sesson Yiibai (1290-1346), 118 Sakyamuni, 26, 189-190, 196; life of, 5, Setsudd Sdboku, 128 7, 50; as patron deity, 25; contempla- Seven halls (shichidd), 184 tion of, 158; as Buddha of the Present, Shaka Nyorai, 158, 162, 163
191 Shasekishi, 47
Salvation, 145, 146 Shen-hsiu (d. 706), 8
Samu. See Labor, manual Shen-hui (d. 762), 8
Samurai-dokoro (Board of Retainers), 104 Shiba Takatsune (1305-1367), 261 San’e-in, 151-154; estate management of, Shiba Yoshimasa (1350-1410), 109, 120
154-155 Shidisen, See Mortuary funds
San’e-in ikai (Final instructions for the Shih-ch’a. See Ten Temples
San’e-in, 1339), 151 Shihon, 105 Sangha, 164, 227 Shika. See Prefect, guest
Sangen’in, 273 Shiina Hiroo, 250
Sanpo’in, 94 tion
Sankyo itchi. See Unity ofthe ThreeCreeds shikan taza, 50, 53, 54. See also MeditaSanshdji, 199; architectural style of, 200; Shiki (rights), 255
hoje of, 201 Shikken (regent office), 57, 58, 69, 71, 76
SanshGji garanzu, 178 Shinchi Kakushin (Hotts Kokushi;Muhon,
Sanzen (discussions on Zen), 72, 78 1207-1298), 48-49; writings of, 49,
Sasaki Ginya, 274 135
Sasaki Sadashige, 20 Shingi (Ch’an regulations),67,150 Sasaki Sadatsuna (1142-1205), 20 Shingon Buddhism, 4, 40, 48, 61, 87, 147,
Sasaki Takauji (1306-1373), 118 293; landholdings of, 14; deities of, 49,
Sasaki Ujiyori, 121 191; imperial patronage of, 85, 94, 95; Sato Shin’ichi, 96, 97, 103 sohei of, 94, 95; pagodas of, 107; hierScribe (shoki), 229, 239; duties of, 238; archy in, 227
training of, 244 Shingon hall, 192
396 Index Shinju’an, 273 Shukke taiko (1195), 135 Shinnyoji, 114 Shunjo (1166-1227), 31 Shinran (1173-1262), 21, 31, 61; rejec- Shun’oku Mydha (1311-1388), 111, 119,
tion of monastic life by, 145 120-122, 151
Shinsho Shonin (1443-1495), 99 “Shuryod shingi’ (Regulations for the Shintd: shrines of, 40, 58, 94, 95; appeal reading room, 1249), 148
to warriors of, 59 Shuso. See Office of chief seat
Shin’yo (portable shrine): of Enryakuji, Shuzenji, 74
105,121 Sick-room head (dos), 157
Shissui. See Steward, labor Silver Pavilion, 201
Shdbd genzd (An eye-treasury of the true S&d6. See Monks’ hall
Dharma), 51, 147, 173 Sdhei (monk-soldiers), 19-20, 59, 94,
Shdden’an hatto, 135, 152 95-96 Shden (estates): temple and shrine rights Soyjiyi, 1
to, 13-16, 54; dissolution of, 14-15, Sdkan, 273 254, 262, 285, 286; taxes of, 17, 20, Sorin (thicket; grove), 29 256; monastic funding by, 104, 274, Sodrin Zenmon, 281 285; management of, by San’e-in, 154- Sdroku. See Registrar General of Monks 155; officials for, 241, 277; steward- Sdshobun (1250), 196 ship rights of, 255-259, 261-262, 265- Sdtd school, xvi, 50; number of active
266, 285 temples in, 1, 291; establishment of,
Shogaku, 51 in Japan, 5, 54, 293; development of, Shdgen’in, 274, 281 30, 88; reading rooms of, 215; expanShdgo’in, 45 sion of, 289. See also Dogen Shdichi. See Enni Ben’en Southern court, 81, 116, 289 Shoichi school, 47, 93, 113, 295; affiliated Southern school, 8
monasteries of, 116 Sravaka, 162
Shoki. See Scribe Steward: in China (k’u-ssu), 236; in eastShékokuji, xviii, 1, 106, 112, 182, 227; ern rank (chiji), duties of, 239, 241, and gozan system, 101, 110; construc- 275, 276-277 tion of, 111; sub-temple of, 122-123; Steward, labor (shissui), 239, 240 destruction of, 125; Dharma hall of, Steward rights (jitd shiki), 73, 256 196; enrollments in, 224; finances of, | Steward, sanitation (jinju), 157 242, 279, 280; shden rights of, 276, Sugydroku, 46, 47 289; peasant damage to, 283;commer- Suko, Emperor (1334-1398), 86
cial activities of, 283-284 Sijuji: shozan status of, 115
Shdsd. See “Holy monk”’ Sung-i, 138
Shodsu. See Estate overseer Sung kao-seng-chuan (988), 136, 251 Shozan. See Many Mountains Sung Lien (1310-1381), xvii, 109 ‘‘Shozan juen kinsei j6j5,” 120 Sung-wen-hsien-kung-ch’uan-chi, 109 Shrines: landholdings of, 13-14, 16; in- Sung-yuan ling (Shdgen-ha): emigre monks
come for, 17-18; Shintd, 94-95 from, 65
Shugo (provincial military governor), 82, Superintendent (tu-wei-no), 236 97, 118, 124, 254, 260, 266, 294; Supervisor, monastery (chien-ssu), 236
shéen rights of, 14; patronage by, 26, Sutras, 2, 43, 139, 158, 161, 193, 217, 81, 87, 101, 107-108, 113, 115, 226, 271; in Tendai school, 4; and medita-
288; Hdjd control over, 83 tion, 7, 143; repository (kydzd), 184
Shih6 Myodché (Daitd Kokushi, 1282-
1337), xvili, 86, 92, 93, 94 Ta-hsiu Cheng-nien (Daikyu Shonen, 1214-
Shukke (leaving the world), 145 1288), 70
Index 397 Tachibana Kosen, 15 Tenryuji-bune, 105
Tachikawa school, 94 Tenryuyji kinen koryaku, 105 “Taidai kohd” (Deference toward seniors, Ten’yo Seikei, 284
1244), 148 “Tenzo kydkun’’ (Instructions for the Taiheiki, 81, 253 monastery cook, 1237), 148 Taikan shingi (1332), 77, 135 ~ Tetto Giko (1295-1369), 118; writings
Taira Kiyomori (1118-1181), 27 of, 135, 152
Takakura, Emperor (1161-1181), 38 Tettsu Gikai (1219-1309), 174
Takeuchi Rizo, 13, 15 The Tale of Genji, 78, 127
Takuhatsu (alms seeking), 2 Thousand Buddha Pavilion, 173, 196
Tamamuro Fumio, 11 T’ien-jan Ch’an-shih (738-824), 194
Tamamura Takeji, 102, 181 T’ien-t’ai school: Japanese contact with,
Tao-an (314-385), 7 3-4, 32; founders of, 7; influence on Tao-hsuan (Dosen, 702-760), 3 Ch’an, 10
Taoism, 7, 27, 33, 79, 182, 200 T’ien-t’ai-shan, 36, 173, 249; ground plans Tatchi (sub-temples), 115, 117, 150, 170, of, 175, 199 273, 274, 285; functions of, 124, 219; T’ien-t’ung Ju-ching (Tendo Nyojo, 1163-
growth of, 181, 215, 224 1228), 50
Te-shan Hsuan-chien (780-865), 193 T’ien-t’ung-shan, 34, 36, 173; ground Tea: treatise on, by Eisai, 38; ceremony, plans of, 175, 176, 186, 187, 203; as 39, 76, 100, 201, 233, 271, 273; a model for Japanese monasteries, 177, meetings (cha yoriai), 79; masters of, 179; setting of, 182; bathhouse of,
126, 127, 273, 295 | 202, 203
Tea hall (sadd). See Ceremony chamber T’ien-t’ung-ssu: Dharma hall of, 196 Ten Temples (jissatsu), 29, 76, 106, 112- Timely school, 11
115, 129, 288; numbers of, xvi, 116, Tdédaiji, 13, 40, 43, 45, 95, 106; land224; in China (shih-ch’a), 33, 109, 113, holdings of, 14, 15, 241, 255; guild 177; destruction of, 125; enrollments sponsorships by, 16; toll barriers of, in, 224; offices in, 230; landholdings 17;monk-soldiers of, 19, 105
of, 266, 285 Todd. See Eastern hall
Fendai hall, 193 Tofukuji, 1, 45, 47, 48, 52, 68, 69, 112,
Tendai school, 87, 147; founder of, 3; 214, 228, 267; construction of, 43; fourfold practice of, 4, 26; and Sung gozan ranking of, 110; regulations for, Zen, 28, 39, 121, 293; lineages of, 14, 149; ground plans of, 175, 177, 196, 53; and Lotus Sutra, 52; sdhei of, 94, 208-209; monks’ hall of, 178, 180, 121; pagodas of, 107; hierarchy in, 208: bathhouse of, 178, 204; latrines
227. See also T’ien-t’ai. of, 178, 205; Dharma hall of, 196-
Tenka soroku (Registrar General ofMonks), 197; founder’s hall of, 201; enroll-
119-123 ments in, 224; income of, 262; land-
Tenrytji, xviii, 68, 84, 101, 103, 112, holdings of, 289 149, 183; building of, 103-106; con- Tofukuji jaojogoto, 135 flict with Enryakuji, 105; gozan rank- Togan Ean (1225-1277), 71 ing of, 110; destruction of, 125; char- Togudo, 99
acteristics of, 150; ground plans of, Toji, 13, 45, 288; landholdings of, 15, 178; setting of, 183; architectural style 241, 255, 276; abbots of, 45; patronage
of, 200; enrollments in, 224; abbots in, of, 95 230; finances of, 242, 279; income of, Tojiji, 101, 103, 112; rebuilding of, 106; by province, 265, 269; shden rights of, as Ashikaga family temple, 106, 113; 276; peasant damage to, 283; commer- abbots of, 106; jissatsu status of, 106
cial activities of, 283 Tok6dji: shozan status of, 112
398 Index Tokugawa Hidetada (1579-1632), 268 Warriors: affinity to Zen, 25-26, 58-59,
Tokugawa Iemitsu (1604-1651), 268 61, 116, 225, 292, 294; affinity to Tokugawa Ieyasu (1542-1616), 19, 262, Shintd, 59; cultural influence of Zen
268 on, 78-79, 83-84; and Lotus and
Tokusei (demands for interest payment re- Pure Land schools, 80-84; patronage
lief), 282 of Rinzai Zen, 81, 92; expanded power Tokuzenji hatto, 135, 152 of, 96
Tomydji: pagodas in, 107 Washstands (goka or koka), 201-206
Toshoddaiji, 206 Weapons: prohibition of, 96, 165, 167,
Toshoji, 114 168
Totoku Shinno. See Sera Shinnod Wei-no (registrar), 141, 144 Toyotomi Hideyoshi (1536-1598), 127, Western hall (seido), 230, 233 196, 262, 268, 274; land reforms of, Western ranks (seihan): officers of, 237, 15, 285, 289; burning of Negorosan, 238, 239; functions of, 242
19 Wu-an P’u-ning (Gottan Funei, 1197-
Tozenji, 114 1276), 60, 92; and Hojo Tokiyori, Trade, foreign, 101, 105; as source of 68-70; teachings of, 69; disciples of,
monastery income, 124, 241, 253, 71, 89 254, 262, 283-284, 286, 295, 296; Wu-chun Shih-fan (1177-1249), 41, 42, 45,
profits from, 285 48, 68, 72, 174; P’o-an line of, 65
Transmission, mind-to-mind, 7, 140; D6- Wu-hsueh Tsu-yuan (Mugaku Sogen, 1226gen’s teachings on, 53; Wu-an to Tokti- 1286), 42, 47, 92, 149; lineage of, 65,
yori, 69 116; political views of, 71; and Hojo
Ts’ao-tung. See Sotd Tokimune, 72-73, 255; disciples of, 89 Tsubun. See Bursar Wu-men Hui-k’ai (Mumon Ekai, 1183Tsung-cning-lu (Sugydroku), 43 1260), 48 Tsurugaoka Hachiman shrine, 40, 58, 59 Wu-t’ai-shan, 32
Tstusu. See Prior Wu Tse-t’ien, Empress, 8
Tung-ming Hui-jih (Tomyod Enichi, 1272-
Tungchen ig. Yamana Tokiuji (1303-1371), 106, 121 Yanagida Seizan, 152
. Yoga-sastra, 139
Uesugi Zenshu (d. 1417), 124 Yang-chi school, 41
Ui Hakuju, 250 Yoko Gonnokami Yoshiharu, 173 Ujidera, 82, 106, 108, 116 okoyama onnokami ©ossmam
Unganji, 47 Yosai. See Eisai
Unity of the Three Creeds, 33, 43, 79; YOso Soi (1376-1458), 120,272
Dogen’s criticism of, 52 Yotokw'in, 274
Unsen Taikyoku (1421-7), 100 Yuasa Soken, 258-259, 261 Ususama Myoo, 205 Zassho. See Monastery representative
Varley, H. Paul, 96 Zazen. See Meditation Vimalakirti, 197 Zeami: concept of yugen, 200
Vinaya, 4, 7, 37; precepts of, 208 Zekkai Chushin (1336-1405), 122, 124
Vinaya School, See Lu school Zendo, 181, 210, 215 Zenkaku, 244, 245
Waka, 78, 86 Zenkdji: abbot of, 70; fissatsu rank of,
Wan-nien-ssu. See T’ien-t’ai-shan 113,114
Wang Hsuan-ts’e, 197 Zenkyo’an, 192 Wanshi school, 74-75, 88 Zenpukuji, 114
Index 399 Zenrin shdkisen, 184 Zenritsugata tonin, 118
Zenritsu bugyd, 118-119 Zenzai Ddji (Somachattra), 189 Zenritsugata (Commissioner for Zen Zdsu. See Prefect, sutra and Ritsu Monasteries), 103, 104, Zuikei Shthd (1392-1473), 100, 122
229 Zuisenji, 114
TERT ES Harvard East Asian Monographs
1. Liang Fang-chung, The Single-Whip Method of Taxation in China | 2. Harold C. Hinton, The Grain Tribute System of China, 1845-1911 3. Ellsworth C. Carlson, The Kaiping Mines, 1877-1912 4, Chao Kuo-chiin, Agrarian Policies of Mainland China: A Documentary Study, 1949-1956
5. Edgar Snow, Random Notes on Red China, 1936-1945 6. Edwin George Beal, Jr.. The Origin of Likin, 1835-1864
7. Chao Kuo-chiin, Economic Planning and Organization in Mainland China: A Documentary Study, 1949-1957 8. John K. Fairbank, Ch’ing Documents: An Introductory Syllabus
9. Helen Yin and Yi-chang Yin, Economic Statistics of Mainland China, 1949-1957
10. Wolfgang Franke, The Reform and Abolition of the Traditional Chinese Examination System
11. Albert Feuerwerker and S. Cheng, Chinese Communist Studies of Modern Chinese History 12. C. John Stanley, Late Ch’ing Finance: Hu Kuang-yung as an Innovator 13. S.M. Meng, The Tsungli Yamen: Its Organization and Functions 14. Ssu-yti Teng, Historiography of the Taiping Rebellion 15. Chun-Jo Liu, Controversies in Modern Chinese Intellectual History: An Analytic Bibliography of Periodical Articles, Mainly of the May Fourth and Post-May Fourth Era 16. Edward J. M. Rhoads, The Chinese Red Army, 1927-1963: An Annotated Bibliography
17. Andrew J. Nathan, A History of the China International Famine Relief Commission
18. Frank H. H. King (ed.) and Prescott Clarke, A Research Guide to China-Coast Newspapers, 1822-1911 19. Ellis Joffe, Party and Army: Professionalism and Political Control in the Chinese Officer Corps, 1949-1964
20. Toshio G. Tsukahira, Feudal Control in Tokugawa Japan: The Sankin Kotat System
21. Kwang-Ching Liu, ed., American Missionaries in China: Papers from Harvard Seminars
22. George Moseley, A Sino-Soviet Cultural Frontier: The Ih Kazakh Autonomous Chou 23. Carl F. Nathan, Plague Prevention and Politics in Manchuria, 1910-1931 24. Adrian Arthur Bennett, John Fryer: The Introduction of Western Science and Technology into Nineteenth-Century China
25. Donald J. Friedman, The Road from Isolation: The Campaign of the American Committee for Non-Participation in Japanese Aggression, 1938-1941
26. Edward LeFevour, Western Enterprise in Late Ch’ing China: A Selective Survey of Jardine, Matheson and Company’s Operations, 1842-1895
27. Charles Neuhauser, Third World Politics: China and the Afro-Astan People’s Solidarity Organization, 1957-1967
28. Kungtu C. Sun, assisted by Ralph W. Huenemann, The Economic Development of Manchuria in the First Half of the Twentieth Century 29. Shahid Javed Burki, A Study of Chinese Communes, 1965 30. John Carter Vincent, The Extraterritorial System in China: Final Phase 31. Madeleine Chi, China Diplomacy, 1914-1918 32. Clifton Jackson Phillips, Protestant America and the Pagan World: The First Half Century of the American Board of Commissioners for Foreign Missions, 1810-1860
33. James Pusey, Wu Han: Attacking the Present through the Past 34. Ying-wan Cheng, Postal Communication in China and Its Modernization, 1860-1896
35. Tuvia Blumenthal, Saving in Postwar Japan 36. Peter Frost, The Bakumatsu Currency Crisis 37. Stephen C. Lockwood, Augustine Heard and Company, 1858-1862 38. Robert R. Campbell, James Duncan Campbell: A Memoir by His Son 39. Jerome Alan Cohen, ed., The Dynamics of China’s Foreign Relations 40. V.V. Vishnyakova-Akimova, Two Years in Revolutionary China, 19251927, tr. Steven I. Levine 41. Meron Medzini, French Policy in Japan during the Closing Years of the Tokugawa Regime
42. The Cultural Revolution in the Provinces 43. Sidney A. Forsythe, An American Missionary Community in China, 1895-1905
44. Benjamin I. Schwartz, ed., Reflections on the May Fourth Movement: A Symposium
45. Ching Young Choe, The Rule of the Taewon’gun, 1864-1873: Restoration in Yt Korea
46. W.P.J. Hall, A Bibliographical Guide to Japanese Research on the Chinese Economy, 1958-1970
47. Jack J. Gerson, Horatio Nelson Lay and Sino-British Relations, 1854— 1864
48. Paul Richard Bohr, Famine and the Missionary: Timothy Richard as Relief Administrator and Advocate of National Reform 49, Endymion Wilkinson, The History of Imperial China: A Research Guide 50. Britten Dean, China and Great Britain: The Diplomacy of Commercial Relations, 1860-1864 51. Ellsworth C. Carlson, The Foochow Missionaries, 1847~—1880
52. Yeh-chien Wang, An Estimate of the Land-Tax Collection in China, 1753 and 1908
53. Richard M. Pfeffer, Understanding Business Contracts in China, 19491963
54. Han-sheng Chuan and Richard Kraus, Mid-Ch’ing Rice Markets and Trade: An Essay in Price History
55. Ranbir Vohra, Lao She and the Chinese Revolution 56. Liang-lin Hsiao, China’s Foreign Trade Statistics, 1864-1949 57. Lee-hsia Hsu Ting, Government Control of the Press in Modern China, 1900-1949
58. Edward W. Wagner, The Literati Purges: Political Conflict in Early Yi Korea
59. Joungwon A. Kim, Divided Korea: The Politics of Development, 1945— 1972
60. Noriko Kamachi, John K. Fairbank, and Chazo Ichiko, Japanese Studies of Modern China Since 1953: A Bibliographical Guide to Historical and Social-Science Research on the Nineteenth and Twentieth Centuries, Supplementary Volume for 1953-1969
61. Donald A. Gibbs and Yun-chen Li, A Bibliography of Studies and — Translations of Modern Chinese Literature, 1918-1942
62. Robert H. Silin, Leadership and Values: The Organization of LargeScale Taiwanese Enterprises
63. David Pong, A Critical Guide to the Kwangtung Provincial Archives
| Deposited at the Public Record Office of London 64. Fred W. Drake, China Charts the World: Hsu Chi-yii and His Geography of 1848
65. William A. Brown and Urgunge Onon, translators and annotators, History of the Mongolian People’s Republic
66. Edward L. Farmer, Early Ming Government: The Evolution of Dual Capitals
67. Ralph C. Croizier, Koxinga and Chinese Nationalism: History, Myth, and the Hero 68. William J. Tyler, tr., The Psychological World of Natsume Séseki, by Doi Takeo
69. Eric Widmer, The Russian Ecclesiastical Mission in Peking during the Eighteenth Century 70. Charlton M. Lewis, Prologue to the Chinese Revolution: The Transformation of Ideas and Institutions in Hunan Province, 1891-1907 71. Preston Torbert, The Ch’ing Imperial Household Department: A Study of its Organization and Principal Functions, 1662-1796
72. Paul A. Cohen and John E. Schrecker, eds., Reform in Nineteenth-Century China 73. Jon Sigurdson, Rural Industrialism in China 74. Kang Chao, The Development of Cotton Textile Production in China 75. Valentin Rabe, The Home Base of American China Missions, 1880-1920 76. Sarasin Viraphol, Tribute and Profit: Sino-Siamese Trade, 1652-1853 77. Ch’i-ch’ing Hsiao, The Military Establishment of the Yuan Dynasty 78. Meishi Tsai, Contemporary Chinese Novels and Short Stories, 19491974: An Annotated Bibliography
79. Wellington K. K. Chan, Merchants, Mandarins and Modern Enterprise in Late Ch’ing China
80. Endymion Wilkinson, Landlord and Labor in Late Imperial China: Case Studies from Shandong by Jing Su and Luo Lun
81. Barry Keenan, The Dewey Experiment in China: Educational Reform and Political Power in the Early Republic 82. George A. Hayden, Crime and Punishment in Medieval Chinese Drama: Three Judge Pao Plays 83. Sang-Chul Suh, Growth and Structural Changes in the Korean Economy, 1910-1940
84. J. W. Dower, Empire and Aftermath: Yoshida Shigeru and the Japanese Experience, 1878-1954
85. Martin Collcutt, Five Mountains: The Rinzai Zen Monastic Institution in Medieval Japan 86. Kwang Suk Kim and Michael Roemer, Growth and Structural Transformation
87. Anne O. Krueger, The Developmental Role of the Foreign Sector and Aid
88. Edwin S. Mills and Byung-Nak Song, Urbanization and Urban Problems
89. Sung Hwan Ban, Pal Yong Moon, and Dwight H. Perkins, Rural Development
90. Noel F. McGinn, Donald R. Snodgrass, Yung Bong Kim, Shin-Bok Kim, and Quee-Young Kim, Education and Development in Korea 91. Leroy P. Jones and Il SaKong, Government, Business, and Entrepreneurship in Economic Development: The Korean Case 92. Edward S. Mason, Dwight H. Perkins, Kwang Suk Kim, David C. Cole, Mahn Je Kim, et al., The Economic and Social Modernization of the Republic of Korea
93. Robert Repetto, Tai Hwan Kwon, Son-Ung Kim, Dae Young Kim, John E. Sloboda, and Peter J. Donaldson, Economic Development, Population Policy, and Demographic Transition in the Republic of Korea 94. Parks M. Coble, Jr.. The Shanghai Capitalists and the Nationalist Government, 1927-1937
95. Noriko Kamachi, Reform in China: Huang Tsun-hsien and the Japanese Model
96. Richard Wich, Sino-Soviet Crisis Politics: A Study of Political Change and Communication 97. Lillian M. Li, China’s Silk Trade: Traditional Industry in the Modern World, 1842-1937
98. R. David Arkush, Fe: Xiaotong and Sociology in Revolutionary China 99. Kenneth Alan Grossberg, Japan’s Renaissance: The Politics of the Muromachi Bakufu 100. James Reeve Pusey, China and Charles Darwin 101. Hoyt Cleveland Tillman, Utilitarian Confucianism: Ch’en Liang’s Challenge to Chu Hs1 102. Thomas A. Stanley, Osugi Sakae, Anarchist in Taisho Japan: The Creativity of the Ego 103. Jonathan K. Ocko, Bureaucratic Reform in Provincial China: Ting Jthch’ang in Restoration Kiangsu, 1867-1870 104. James Reed, The Missionary Mind and American East Asia Policy, 19111915
105. Neil L. Waters, Japan’s Local Pragmatists: The Transition from Bakumatsu to Meiji in the Kawasaki Region 106. David C. Cole and Yung Chul Park, Financial Development in Korea, 1945-1978
107. Roy Bahl, Chuk Kyo Kim, and Chong Kee Park, Public Finances during the Korean Modernization Process 108. William D. Wray, Mitsubishi and the N.Y.K., 1870-1914: Business Strategy in the Japanese Shipping Industry 109. Ralph William Huenemann, The Dragon and the Iron Horse: The Economics of Railroads in China, 1876-1937 110. Benjamin A. Elman, From Philosophy to Philology: Intellectual and Social Aspects of Change in Late Imperial China 111. Jane Kate Leonard, Wei Yuan and China’s Rediscovery of the Maritime World
112. Luke S. K. Kwong, A Mosaic of the Hundred Days: Personalities, Politics, and Ideas of 1898 113. John E. Wills, Jr., Embassies and Illusions: Dutch and Portuguese Envoys to K’ang-hsi, 1666-1687 114. Joshua A. Fogel, Politics and Sinology: The Case of Naité Konan (18661934)
115. Jeffrey C. Kinkley, ed., After Mao: Chinese Literature and Society, 19781981
116. C. Andrew Gerstle, Circles of Fantasy: Convention in the Plays of Chikamatsu
117. Andrew Gordon, The Evolution of Labor Relations in Japan: Heavy Industry, 1853-1955 118. Daniel K. Gardner, Chu Hsi and the Ta Hsueh: Neo-Confucian Reflection on the Confucian Canon 119. Christine Guth Kanda, Shinzé: Hachiman Imagery and its Development 120. Robert Borgen, Sugawara no Michizane and the Early Heian Court 121. Chang-tai Hung, Going to the People: Chinese Intellectual and Folk Literature, 1918-1937 122. Michael A. Cusumano, The Japanese Automobile Industry: Technology and Management at Nissan and Toyota
123. Richard von Glahn, The Country of Streams and Grottoes: Expansion, Settlement, and the Civilizing of the Sichuan Frontier in Song Times 124. Steven D. Carter, The Road to Komatsubara: A Classical Reading of the Renga Hyakuin 125. Katherine F. Bruner, John K. Fairbank, and Richard T. Smith, Entering China’s Service: Robert Hart’s Journals, 1854-1863
126. Bob Tadashi Wakabayashi, Anti-Foreignism and Western Learning in Early-Modern Japan: The New Theses of 1825 127. Atsuko Hirai, Individualism and Socialism: The Life and Thought of Kawai Eyir6é (1891-1944)
128. Ellen Widmer, The Margins of Utopia: Shui-hu hou-chuan and the Literature of Ming Loyalism 129. R. Kent Guy, The Emperor’s Four Treasuries: Scholars and the State in the Late Ch'ten-lung Era
130. Peter C. Perdue, Exhausting the Earth: State and Peasant in Hunan, 1500-1850
131. Susan Chan Egan, A Latterday Confucian: Reminiscences of William Hung (1893-1980)
132. James T. C. Liu, China Turning Inward: Intellectual-Political Changes in the Early Twelfth Century 133. Paul A. Cohen, Between Tradition and Modernity: Wang T’ao and Reform in Late Ch’ing China 134. Kate Wildman Nakai, Shogunal Politics: Arai Hakuseki and the Premises of Tokugawa Rule 135. Parks M. Coble, Facing Japan: Chinese Politics and Japanese Imperialism, 1931-1937 136. Jon L. Saari, Legacies of Childhood: Growing Up Chinese in a Time of Crisis, 1890-1920 137. Susan Downing Videen, Tales of Heichii
138. Heinz Morioka and Miyoko Sasaki, Rakugo: The Popular Narrative Art of Japan 139. Joshua A. Fogel, Nakae Ushikichi in China: The Mourning of Spirit 140. Alexander Barton Woodside, Vietnam and the Chinese Model: A Comparative Study of Vietnamese and Chinese Government in the First Half of the Nineteenth Century
141. George Elison, Deus Destroyed: The Image of Christianity in Early Modern Japan
142. William D. Wray, ed., Managing Industrial Enterprise: Cases from Japan’s Prewar Experience 143. T’ung-tsu Ch’ti, Local Government in China under the Ch’ing 144. Marie Anchordoguy, Computers, Inc.: Japan’s Challenge to IBM
145. Barbara Molony, Technology and Investment: The Prewar Japanese Chemical Industry 146. Mary Elizabeth Berry, Hideyoshi 147. Laura E. Hein, Fueling Growth: The Energy Revolution and Economic Policy in Postwar Japan 148. Wen-hsin Yeh, The Alienated Academy: Culture and Politics in Republican China, 1919-1937 149. Dru C. Gladney, Muslim Chinese: Ethnic Nationalism in the People’s Republic
150. Merle Goldman and Paul A. Cohen, eds., Ideas Across Cultures: Essays on Chinese Thought in Honor of Benjamin I. Schwartz 151. James Polachek, The Inner Opium War 152. Gail Lee Bernstein, Japanese Marxist: A Portrait of Kawakami Hajime, 1879-1946
153. Lloyd E. Eastman, The Abortive Revolution: China under Nationalist Rule, 1927-1937
154. Mark Mason, American Multinationals and Japan: The Political Economy of Japanese Capital Controls, 1899-1980
155. Richard J. Smith, John K. Fairbank, and Katherine F. Bruner, Robert Hart and China’s Early Modernization: His Journals, 1863-1866 156. George J. Tanabe, Jr., Myoe the Dreamkeeper: Fantasy and Knowledge in Kamakura Buddhism
157. William Wayne Farris, Heavenly Warriors: The Evolution of Japan’s Military, 500-1300 158. Yu-ming Shaw, An American Missionary in China: John Leighton Stuart and Chinese-American Relations 159. James B. Palais, Politics and Policy in Traditional Korea 160. Douglas Reynolds, China, 1898-1912: The Xinzheng Revolution and Ja-
pan 161. Roger Thompson, China’s Local Councils in the Age of Constitutional Reform
162. William Johnston, The Modern Epidemic: History of Tuberculosis in Japan 163. Constantine Nomikos Vaporis, Breaking Barriers: Travel and the State in Early Modern Japan 165. James C. Baxter, The Meyi Unification through the Lens of Ishikawa Prefecture 166. Thomas R. H. Havens, Architects of Affluence: The Tsutsumi Family and the Seibu-Saison Enterprises in Twentieth-Century Japan
167. Anthony Hood Chambers, The Secret Window: Ideal Worlds in Tanizaki’s Fiction